Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n call_v good_a know_v 1,906 5 3.4501 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A30905 Truth triumphant through the spiritual warfare, Christian labours, and writings of that able and faithful servant of Jesus Christ, Robert Barclay, who deceased at his own house at Urie in the kingdom of Scotland, the 3 day of the 8 month 1690. Barclay, Robert, 1648-1690. 1692 (1692) Wing B740; ESTC R25857 1,185,716 995

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

word_n as_o he_o will_v draw_v consequence_n at_o pleasure_n and_o make_v to_o himself_o what_o monster_n best_o please_v his_o fancy_n or_o like_o his_o humour_n best_a to_o batter_v and_o yet_o he_o can_v find_v in_o it_o by_o all_o his_o pervert_v enough_o to_o make_v we_o so_o black_a as_o he_o will_v have_v we_o so_o that_o he_o be_v often_o time_n constrain_v to_o fish_n for_o this_o by_o cite_v the_o write_n of_o some_o that_o have_v write_v against_o we_o and_o bring_v we_o up_o some_o of_o their_o old_a thread_n bare_a calumnys_n long_o ago_o answer_v by_o we_o in_o which_o his_o injustice_n shall_v be_v afterward_o observe_v and_o so_o he_o be_v thus_o furnish_v can_v the_o more_o easy_o abuse_v especial_o while_o he_o be_v almost_o secure_a that_o the_o generality_n of_o those_o he_o write_v to_o be_v such_o as_o will_v not_o call_v in_o question_n as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o what_o be_v say_v by_o one_o esteem_v by_o they_o a_o precious_a and_o gracious_a minister_n and_o sufferer_n for_o the_o good_a cause_n to_o boot_v but_o bless_v be_v god_n the_o number_n of_o such_o implicit_a believer_n grow_v daily_o less_o and_o many_o that_o have_v wont_a to_o do_v otherwise_o begin_v to_o love_v to_o see_v with_o their_o own_o eye_n and_o not_o to_o pin_v their_o faith_n so_o much_o upon_o the_o clergy_n sleeve_n as_o they_o have_v use_v former_o to_o do_v for_o this_o cause_n have_v i_o have_v to_o do_v only_o with_o the_o more_o judicious_a and_o learned_a who_o can_v have_v well_o understand_v the_o latin_a edition_n i_o shall_v have_v think_v myself_o the_o less_o concern_v to_o have_v say_v any_o thing_n to_o this_o answer_n but_o know_v that_o his_o may_v come_v to_o the_o hand_n of_o many_o and_o may_v be_v read_v by_o they_o who_o do_v not_o understand_v latin_a and_o that_o not_o a_o few_o who_o do_v understand_v it_o love_v rather_o to_o read_v and_o consider_v thing_n in_o their_o own_o language_n this_o make_v i_o hasten_v a_o english_a edition_n not_o one_o sheet_n whereof_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o press_n several_a week_n after_o j._n b_n book_n come_v out_o and_o now_o it_o be_v abroad_o as_o to_o those_o who_o be_v diligent_a and_o judicious_a and_o will_v serious_o to_o compare_v as_o to_o the_o argumentative_a part_n i_o shall_v not_o to_o be_v much_o concern_v to_o answer_v he_o judge_v the_o english_a edition_n with_o all_o such_o a_o sufficient_a reply_n to_o this_o pretend_a examination_n however_o conquest_n j._n b_n sing_v a_o triumph_n before_o the_o conquest_n he_o often_o time_n sing_v a_o triumph_n to_o himself_o say_v in_o many_o place_n what_o will_v our_o quaker_n say_v now_o contrary_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o sobriety_n and_o to_o what_o the_o scripture_n teach_v he_o say_v let_v not_o he_o boast_v that_o put_v on_o his_o armour_n but_o he_o that_o take_v it_o off_o beside_o what_o his_o brother_n in_o a_o most_o fawn_a flatter_a manner_n add_v in_o his_o postscript_n to_o which_o something_o may_v be_v say_v hereafter_o but_o because_o too_o many_o out_o of_o malice_n prejudice_n and_o ignorance_n may_v be_v too_o apt_a to_o credit_v he_o i_o resolve_v here_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o gross_a perversion_n and_o abuse_n upon_o every_o thesis_n and_o of_o his_o most_o unreasonable_a and_o brutish_a rail_a which_o be_v subject_v to_o the_o reader_n be_v view_n will_v give_v he_o a_o great_a insight_n in_o the_o matter_n and_o let_v he_o see_v what_o kind_n of_o man_n this_o be_v and_o what_o kind_n of_o work_n it_o be_v that_o come_v from_o he_o and_o likewise_o in_o respect_n he_o insult_v very_o much_o i_o may_v labour_v to_o allay_v it_o in_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o chief_a argument_n that_o be_v any_o way_n to_o the_o purpose_n this_o i_o know_v will_v satisfy_v the_o moderate_a and_o judicious_a who_o bring_v not_o along_o with_o they_o a_o understanding_n already_o prepossess_v but_o be_v will_v patient_o to_o hear_v both_o party_n and_o then_o make_v a_o judgement_n according_o and_o as_o for_o other_o who_o be_v whole_o prepossess_v with_o malice_n and_o prejudice_n and_o have_v no_o ear_n to_o hear_v but_o according_a to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o postscript_n his_o advice_n avoid_v the_o least_o of_o that_o kind_n as_o poison_n i_o say_v as_o for_o such_o i_o wish_v the_o lord_n open_v their_o eye_n and_o give_v they_o a_o heart_n more_o just_a and_o equal_a i_o shall_v not_o be_v much_o concern_v if_o my_o write_n have_v no_o great_a influence_n upon_o they_o at_o present_a ¶_o 3._o but_o if_o any_o strange_a that_o so_o small_a a_o treatise_n as_o this_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v shall_v answer_v so_o great_a a_o bulk_n the_o consider_v of_o these_o particular_n follow_v will_v easy_o remove_v that_o wonder_n 1._o if_o we_o consider_v how_o much_o be_v take_v up_o in_o mere_a rail_a book_n the_o rail_a expression_n of_o j._n b_n a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o book_n of_o which_o few_o page_n be_v find_v free_a and_o sometime_o take_v up_o near_o the_o whole_a page_n beside_o that_o almost_o every_o paragraph_n end_v with_o a_o dish_n of_o this_o desert_n say_v o_o what_o hell-hatched_n heresy_n these_o abominable_a quaker_n maintain_v and_o the_o like_a beside_o many_o little_a sentence_n such_o as_o this_o be_v a_o answer_n fit_a for_o a_o quaker_n this_o be_v like_o the_o quaker_n nonsense_n i_o see_v the_o quaker_n can_v dream_v wake_v and_o such_o like_a stuff_n i_o need_v not_o set_v down_o page_n to_o prove_v this_o for_o as_o thou_o will_v find_v a_o specimen_fw-la of_o it_o in_o the_o first_o half_a side_n to_o the_o reader_n so_o indeed_o will_v scarce_o open_v the_o book_n but_o thou_o will_v meet_v with_o it_o so_o that_o i_o may_v safe_o say_v to_o speak_v within_o bound_n there_o be_v 20_o sheet_n if_o it_o be_v all_o put_v together_o that_o be_v mere_a rail_a either_o by_o way_n of_o admiration_n detestation_n or_o execration_n which_o have_v nothing_o of_o argumentation_n neither_o from_o scripture_n nor_o reason_n but_o the_o mere_a strong_a affirmo_fw-la of_o the_o assertor_n all_o which_o albeit_o i_o may_v remark_n it_o as_o i_o go_v on_o i_o think_v not_o myself_o concern_v to_o answer_n nor_o do_v i_o conceive_v will_v any_o sober_a man_n judge_n i_o be_o and_o my_o answer_n thereto_o as_o now_o to_o the_o bulk_n of_o it_o so_o may_v perhaps_o prove_v not_o much_o more_o all_o along_o than_o the_o lord_n rebuke_v that_o rail_a spirit_n in_o thou_o j._n b._n and_o if_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o his_o will_n redeem_v thou_o from_o it_o that_o thou_o may_v learn_v sobriety_n of_o that_o grace_n of_o god_n thou_o so_o much_o fight_v against_o it_o be_v a_o trade_n i_o love_v not_o nor_o do_v i_o skill_n or_o think_v to_o learn_v it_o i_o will_v ready_o grant_v he_o both_o the_o preference_n and_o victory_n in_o this_o art_n of_o billingsgate_n rhetoric_n or_o to_o speak_v yet_o more_o plain_a to_o all_o our_o scot_n capacity_n of_o rail-wive_n oratory_n so_o i_o say_v let_v all_o this_o rail_a in_o his_o book_n be_v lay_v aside_o and_o whereas_o he_o will_v insinuate_v in_o several_a place_n as_o if_o there_o be_v much_o rail_a in_o my_o apology_n say_v i_o rage_n and_o such_o like_a expression_n how_o great_a a_o abuse_v this_o be_v i_o leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o intelligent_a reader_n 2._o if_o all_o his_o excursion_n be_v lay_v aside_o wherein_o he_o run_v out_o often_o time_n into_o long_a homily_n by_o way_n of_o explanation_n of_o their_o judgement_n preachment_n j._n b._n be_v excursion_n and_o tedious_a preachment_n descant_v upon_o the_o several_a opinion_n of_o their_o divine_n as_o he_o call_v they_o in_o which_o he_o oftentime_o not_o only_o bestow_v several_a page_n but_o sometime_o divers_a sheet_n as_o in_o its_o place_n may_v be_v observe_v in_o all_o which_o tedious_a preachment_n some_o whereof_o be_v may_v be_v shives_n of_o old_a rusty_a sermon_n that_o have_v be_v lie_v by_o he_o i_o think_v myself_o no_o more_o concern_v than_o if_o the_o man_n have_v write_v a_o great_a volumn_n of_o their_o divinity_n which_o i_o shall_v not_o perhaps_o have_v bestow_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v far_o less_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o my_o business_n to_o answer_v it_o 3._o if_o all_o his_o citation_n out_o of_o hicks_n faldo_n and_o other_o that_o have_v write_v against_o we_o all_o which_o be_v long_o ago_o answer_v proof_n his_o other_o help_n and_o irrational_a proof_n though_o not_o heed_v by_o he_o be_v lay_v aside_o which_o be_v not_o only_o most_o impertinent_a but_o likewise_o unjust_a as_o shall_v be_v after_o more_o particular_o observe_v and_o likewise_o his_o long_a citation_n out_o of_o the_o westminster_n confession_n of_o faith_n and_o large_a
by_o ourselves_o for_o shall_v we_o so_o conclude_v than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o we_o shall_v throw_v away_o all_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n since_o that_o which_o be_v filthy_a rag_n and_o as_o a_o menstruous_a garment_n aught_o to_o be_v throw_v away_o yea_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o all_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n mention_v gal._n 4._o be_v as_o filthy_a rag_n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a some_o of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o sweat_v savour_n in_o the_o nostril_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o ornament_n of_o great_a price_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o prevail_v with_o he_o and_o to_o be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o which_o filthy_a rag_n and_o a_o menstruous_a garment_n can_v be_v yea_o many_o famous_a protestant_n have_v acknowledge_v that_o this_o place_n be_v not_o therefore_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v righteousness_n calvin_n and_z other_o their_o sense_n concern_v isa._n 64_o 6._o of_o our_o righteousness_n calvin_n upon_o this_o place_n say_v that_o it_o be_v use_v to_o be_v cite_v by_o some_o that_o they_o may_v prove_v there_o be_v so_o little_a merit_n in_o our_o work_n that_o they_o be_v before_o god_n filthy_a and_o defile_v but_o this_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v different_a from_o the_o prophet_n mind_n say_v he_o see_v he_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o all_o mankind_n musculus_fw-la upon_o this_o place_n say_v musculus_fw-la musculus_fw-la that_o it_o be_v usual_a for_o this_o people_n to_o presume_v much_o of_o their_o legal_a righteousness_n as_o if_o thereby_o they_o be_v make_v clean_o nevertheless_o they_o have_v no_o more_o cleanness_n than_o the_o unclean_a garment_n of_o a_o man_n other_o expone_fw-la this_o place_n concern_v all_o the_o righteousness_n of_o our_o flesh_n that_o opinion_n indeed_o be_v true_a yet_o i_o think_v that_o the_o prophet_n do_v rather_o accommodate_v these_o say_n to_o the_o impurity_n of_o that_o people_n in_o legal_a term_n the_o author_n common_o suppose_a bertius_n speak_v concern_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o chap._n 7._o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n ann_n bertius_fw-la epistolae_fw-la praefixae_fw-la dissert_v ann_n have_v a_o digression_n touch_v this_o of_o isaiah_n say_v this_o place_n be_v common_o corrupt_v by_o a_o pernicious_a wrest_n for_o it_o be_v still_o allege_a as_o if_o the_o meaning_n thereof_o infer_v the_o most_o excellent_a work_n of_o the_o best_a christian_n etc._n etc._n 78._o ja._n coret_n apolog._n impress_n paris_n ann_n 1597·_fw-la pag._n 78._o james_n coret_fw-la a_o french_a minister_n in_o the_o church_n of_o basil_n in_o his_o apology_n concern_v justification_n against_o alescales_n say_v nevertheless_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o certain_a good_a man_n i_o must_v admonish_v the_o reader_n that_o it_o never_o come_v into_o our_o mind_n to_o abuse_v that_o say_n of_o isa._n 64.6_o against_o good_a work_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o our_o righteousness_n be_v as_o filthy_a rag_n as_o if_o we_o will_v have_v that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o our_o good_a work_n and_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o filthy_a and_o unclean_a thing_n §_o xii_o as_o to_o the_o other_o part_n that_o see_v the_o best_a of_o man_n be_v still_o impure_a and_o imperfect_a therefore_o their_o work_n must_v be_v so_o it_o be_v to_o beg_v the_o answ._n 2_o question_n and_o depend_v upon_o a_o proposition_n deny_v and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v discuss_v at_o further_a length_n in_o the_o next_o proposition_n but_o though_o we_o shall_v suppose_v a_o man_n not_o thorough_o perfect_a in_o all_o respect_n yet_o will_v not_o that_o hinder_v but_o good_a and_o perfect_a work_n in_o their_o kind_n may_v be_v bring_v forth_o in_o they_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n neither_o do_v the_o example_n of_o water_n go_v through_o a_o unclean_a pipe_n hit_v the_o matter_n because_o though_o water_n may_v be_v capable_a to_o be_v tincture_v with_o uncleanness_n yet_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n can_v who_o we_o assert_v to_o be_v the_o immediate_a author_n of_o those_o work_n that_o avail_n in_o justification_n and_o therefore_o jesus_n christ_n his_o work_n in_o his_o child_n be_v pure_a and_o perfect_a and_o he_o work_v in_o and_o through_o that_o pure_a thing_n of_o his_o own_o form_n and_o create_v in_o they_o moreover_o if_o this_o do_v hold_v according_a to_o our_o adversary_n supposition_n that_o no_o man_n ever_o be_v or_o can_v be_v perfect_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o very_a miracle_n and_o work_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o christ_n wrought_v in_o they_o imperfect_a be_v the_o miracle_n and_o work_n of_o the_o apostle_n wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o impure_a and_o imperfect_a and_o they_o wrought_v in_o and_o by_o the_o power_n spirit_n and_o grace_n of_o christ_n be_v also_o impure_a and_o imperfect_a such_o as_o their_o convert_v of_o the_o nation_n to_o the_o christian_a faith_n their_o gather_n of_o the_o church_n their_o writing_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n yea_o and_o their_o offer_v up_o and_o sacrifice_v of_o their_o life_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n what_o may_v our_o adversary_n think_v of_o this_o argument_n whereby_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n who_o perfection_n and_o excellency_n they_o seem_v so_o much_o to_o magnify_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v impure_a and_o imperfect_a because_o they_o come_v through_o impure_a and_o imperfect_a vessel_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n that_o the_o father_n do_v frequent_o attribute_v unto_o work_n of_o this_o kind_n that_o instrumental_a work_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o in_o justification_n albeit_o some_o ignorant_a person_n cry_v out_o that_o it_o be_v popery_n and_o also_o divers_a and_o that_o famous_a protestant_n do_v of_o themselves_o confess_v it_o amandus_n polanus_fw-la in_o his_o symphonia_fw-la catholica_fw-la polanus_fw-la am._n polanus_fw-la c._n 27._o the_o remissione_n peccatorum_fw-la popery_n our_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n and_o work_n be_v not_o popery_n p._n 651._o place_n this_o these_o as_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o protestant_n most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n we_o obtain_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o repentance_n confession_n prayer_n and_o tear_n proceed_v from_o faith_n but_o do_v not_o merit_v to_o speak_v proper_o and_o therefore_o we_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n not_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o repentance_n and_o prayer_n but_o by_o the_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n 151●_n gentiletus_n ex._n impressi_fw-la genev._n 151●_n innocentius_n gentiletus_n a_o lawyer_n of_o great_a fame_n among_o protestant_n in_o his_o examen_fw-la of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n p._n 66_o 67._o of_o justification_n have_v before_o speak_v of_o faith_n and_o work_n add_v these_o word_n but_o see_v the_o one_o can_v be_v without_o the_o other_o we_o call_v they_o both_o conjunct_o instrumental_a cause_n zanchius_n zanchius_n zanchius_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n de_fw-fr naturâ_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v we_o do_v not_o simple_o deny_v that_o good_a work_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n to_o wit_n the_o instrumental_a rather_o than_o the_o efficient_a cause_n which_o they_o call_v sine_fw-la quâ_fw-la non_fw-la and_o afterward_o good_a work_n be_v the_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o the_o possession_n of_o life_n eternal_a for_o by_o these_o as_o by_o a_o mean_n and_o a_o lawful_a way_n 30._o g._n ames_n in_o medullâ_fw-la s._n theologiae_n l._n 2._o c._n 1._o thes._n 30._o god_n lead_v unto_o the_o possession_n of_o life_n eternal_a g._n amesius_n say_v that_o our_o obedience_n albeit_o it_o be_v not_o the_o principal_a and_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o life_n eternal_a be_v nevertheless_o a_o cause_n in_o some_o respect_n administer_a help_a and_o advance_v towards_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o life_n baxter_n r._n baxter_n also_o r._n baxter_n in_o the_o book_n above_o cite_v p._n 155._o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o causality_n as_o by_o faith_n to_o wit_n as_o be_v both_o cause_n sine_fw-la quâ_fw-la non_fw-la or_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n on_o our_o part_n requisite_a to_o justification_n and_o p._n 195._o he_o say_v it_o be_v needless_a to_o teach_v any_o scholar_n who_o have_v read_v the_o writing_n of_o papist_n how_o this_o doctrine_n differ_v from_o they_o work_n of_o the_o merit_n and_o reward_n of_o work_n but_o last_o because_o it_o be_v fit_a here_o to_o say_v something_o of_o the_o merit_n and_o reward_n of_o work_n i_o shall_v add_v something_o in_o this_o place_n of_o our_o sense_n and_o belief_n concern_v that_o matter_n we_o be_v far_o from_o think_v or_o believe_v that_o man_n merit_v any_o thing_n by_o his_o work_n from_o god_n all_o be_v of_o free_a grace_n and_o therefore_o do_v we_o
master_n jo._n m._n will_v not_o assign_v the_o jesuit_n a_o ground_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o therefore_o say_v they_o r._n b_o '_o s._n practice_n agree_v exact_o with_o the_o jesuit_n moral_n and_o give_v a_o egregious_a specimen_fw-la of_o his_o jesuitical_a honesty_n which_o make_v we_o suspect_v he_o to_o be_v a_o jesuited_a emissary_n this_o be_v a_o false_a calumny_n disprove_v by_o their_o own_o account_n where_o pag._n 8._o upon_o this_o occasion_n they_o confess_v r._n b._n say_v only_o that_o their_o master_n desire_v the_o jesuit_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v no_o ground_n for_o it_o will_v they_o deny_v this_o let_v they_o read_v the_o very_a first_fw-mi four_o line_n of_o their_o master_n first_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n paper_n pag._n 3._o and_o they_o will_v find_v he_o put_v the_o jesuit_n to_o prove_v his_o minor_a which_o be_v that_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v no_o such_o ground_n as_o it_o do_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o i._o m._n assign_v not_o afterward_o a_o ground_n so_o neither_o will_n r._n b._n his_o repeat_v this_o infer_v that_o he_o say_v he_o do_v not_o assign_v such_o a_o ground_n yea_o in_o contradiction_n to_o themselves_o pag._n 60._o they_o acknowledge_v he_o tell_v their_o master_n name_v the_o scripture_n as_o a_o ground_n etc._n etc._n so_o it_o be_v manifest_a they_o have_v give_v here_o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o their_o jesuitical_a honesty_n and_o because_o they_o can_v not_o answer_v they_o forge_v lie_n to_o fill_v up_o the_o paper_n and_o thing_n not_o to_o the_o purpose_n as_o pag._n 57_o where_o offering_n to_o reply_v to_o this_o retortion_n they_o say_v but_o for_o answer_n it_o be_v well_o know_v r._n b._n be_v bring_v up_o in_o a_o popish_a college_n and_o it_o be_v think_v by_o many_o that_o he_o be_v a_o jesuited_a emissary_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o this_o a_o pungent_a answer_n reader_n r._n b._n be_v educate_v in_o a_o popish_a college_n answer_v the_o objection_n about_o r._n b_n education_n answer_v ergo_fw-la say_v the_o student_n our_o answer_n be_v not_o that_o which_o the_o jesuit_n use_v against_o our_o master_n it_o seem_v the_o student_n be_v offend_v that_o r._n b._n have_v forsake_v popery_n or_o otherwise_o their_o charge_v he_o with_o his_o education_n must_v be_v very_o impertinent_a as_o indeed_o it_o be_v no_o less_o foolish_a than_o if_o we_o shall_v upbraid_v luther_n calvin_n and_o all_o the_o first_o reformer_n as_o papist_n for_o be_v so_o educate_v and_o though_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n their_o folly_n and_o malice_n lead_v they_o into_o this_o impertinency_n yet_o it_o may_v have_v be_v expect_v that_o their_o gratitude_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o edinburgh_n who_o be_v please_v to_o permit_v their_o book_n to_o be_v print_v may_v have_v hinder_v they_o from_o this_o folly_n see_v he_o be_v educate_v in_o the_o same_o popish_a college_n r._n b._n be_v and_o owe_v some_o of_o his_o philosophy_n to_o it_o whereas_o r._n b_o learned_a only_a there_o a_o little_a grammar_n and_o come_v thence_o in_o his_o 15_o year_n but_o the_o bishop_n be_v there_o profess_v popery_n in_o his_o more_o mature_a age._n so_o if_o this_o reflect_v any_o thing_n upon_o r._n b._n it_o will_v much_o more_o against_o the_o bishop_n which_o they_o will_v do_v well_o to_o clear_v and_o be_v sure_a not_o to_o omit_v when_o they_o write_v next_o or_o else_o acknowledge_v their_o impertinency_n herein_o it_o seem_v they_o want_v strength_n of_o reason_n to_o evite_v the_o retortion_n which_o make_v they_o thus_o rove_v offer_v also_o to_o prove_v that_o their_o master_n do_v assign_v a_o ground_n which_o be_v never_o deny_v and_o that_o he_o be_v defendant_n so_o be_v r._n b._n also_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o purpose_n unless_o to_o make_v the_o retortion_n the_o strong_a and_o show_v they_o can_v get_v by_o it_o but_o pag._n 60._o they_o say_v that_o whereas_o the_o jesuit_n press_v their_o master_n that_o heretic_n do_v say_v their_o religion_n be_v conform_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o so_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o peculiar_a ground_n for_o he_o more_o than_o for_o heretic_n they_o say_v their_o master_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o pretend_a but_o real_a conformity_n unto_o the_o scripture_n that_o demonstrate_v a_o true_a religion_n etc._n etc._n and_o upon_o this_o they_o inquire_v what_o follow_v allege_v they_o argue_v from_o be_v as_o good_a and_o not_o pretend_v and_o so_o fall_v a_o rail_n say_v that_o the_o light_n of_o our_o conscience_n be_v eclipse_v by_o a_o new-found_a light_n and_o that_o we_o misrepresent_v they_o malicious_o this_o rail_a be_v for_o want_v of_o better_a reason_v but_o see_v they_o be_v so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v whether_o they_o will_v see_v it_o or_o not_o we_o shall_v tell_v they_o and_o we_o hope_v let_v the_o reader_n see_v what_o follow_v here_o from_o jo._n menzies_n the_o student_n master_n who_o say_v to_o the_o jesuit_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o heretic_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o ground_n for_o their_o religion_n unless_o it_o real_o be_v so_o and_o that_o other_o heretic_n say_v so_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v as_o little_a a_o ground_n for_o his_o own_o to_o wit_n j._n m_n religion_n very_o well_o the_o quaker_n tell_v the_o student_n that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o heretic_n declare_v they_o have_v the_o spirit_n unless_o it_o be_v real_o so_o and_o their_o say_n they_o have_v it_o while_o they_o have_v it_o not_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o our_o say_n we_o have_v it_o be_v as_o little_a a_o ground_n for_o we_o who_o but_o such_o as_o be_v as_o childish_a as_o the_o student_n will_v affirm_v there_o be_v here_o any_o difference_n but_o further_a they_o confound_v most_o ignorant_o the_o internal_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o the_o declaration_n of_o have_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v two_o different_a thing_n it_o be_v incumbent_n upon_o they_o to_o have_v prove_v it_o the_o internal_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v above_o the_o pretence_n of_o heretic_n unto_o it_o that_o the_o internal_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v as_o good_a a_o evidence_n for_o heretic_n as_o for_o we_o which_o they_o have_v not_o offer_v to_o do_v next_o they_o have_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o declaration_n of_o heretic_n be_v as_o good_a as_o we_o neither_o can_v they_o unless_o they_o can_v prove_v we_o to_o be_v false_a which_o they_o neither_o have_v nor_o can_v do_v but_o they_o have_v egregious_o fall_v in_o that_o inconveniency_n they_o will_v fix_v upon_o we_o pag._n 58.59_o where_o in_o answer_v r._n b_n retortion_n show_v they_o that_o if_o man_n be_v deceive_v contradict_v themselves_o or_o one_o another_o who_o say_v the_o spirit_n be_v the_o rule_n do_v infer_v the_o spirit_n not_o to_o be_v a_o certain_a rule_n then_o man_n be_v deceive_v contradict_v themselves_o and_o one_o another_o who_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n will_v the_o same_o way_n infer_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n here_o they_o be_v miserable_o put_v to_o it_o and_o therefore_o not_o ashamed_a to_o deny_v that_o they_o plead_v not_o against_o the_o spirit_n be_v be_v a_o rule_n for_o these_o cause_n the_o contrary_a for_o which_o be_v know_v to_o all_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o these_o controversy_n and_o for_o example_n let_v they_o read_v their_o so_o much_o applaud_v w._n mitchell_n his_o dialogue_n and_o his_o sober_a answer_n so_o call_v where_o he_o make_v this_o the_o chief_a cause_n yea_o themselves_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n within_o two_o page_n to_o wit_n pag._n 60._o and_o 61._o plead_v against_o the_o teach_v of_o the_o spirit_n affirm_v that_o too_o that_o but_o beside_o will_v not_o their_o master_n answer_n above_o mention_v meet_v well_o with_o they_o here_o that_o since_o these_o sect_n and_o saint_n do_v as_o both_o they_o and_o the_o quaker_n confess_v but_o pretend_v to_o the_o spirit_n that_o because_o they_o do_v but_o pretend_v therefore_o the_o quaker_n do_v but_o pretend_v also_o no_o more_o than_o because_o some_o heretic_n do_v pretend_v their_o religion_n be_v conform_v to_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o i._n m._n do_v so_o too_o because_o the_o georgian_n familist_n and_o pretend_a saint_n as_o francis_n and_o loyola_n etc._n etc._n pretend_v the_o inward_a teach_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o have_v a_o outward_a show_n of_o godliness_n therefore_o the_o spirit_n be_v teach_v to_o deny_v ungodliness_n be_v as_o good_a a_o evidence_n for_o they_o as_o for_o the_o quaker_n who_o but_o the_o student_n will_v run_v themselves_o into_o such_o miserable_a contradiction_n but_o to_o give_v the_o reader_n a_o evident_a demonstration_n of_o the_o
nimeguen_n to_o consult_v the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v concern_v wherein_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o the_o present_a war_n be_v discover_v and_o the_o right_a remedy_n and_o mean_n for_o a_o firm_a and_o settle_a peace_n be_v propose_v by_o r._n barclay_n a_o lover_n and_o traveller_n for_o the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n which_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o in_o latin_a the_o 23_o d._n and_o 24_o the_o day_n of_o the_o month_n call_v february_n 1677_o 8._o and_o now_o publish_v in_o english_a for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o such_o as_o understand_v not_o the_o language_n psal._n 2.10_o be_v wise_a therefore_o you_o king_n be_v instruct_v you_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n and_o rejoice_v with_o tremble_v kiss_v the_o son_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o you_o perish_v from_o the_o way_n when_o his_o wrath_n be_v kindle_v but_o a_o little_a bless_v be_v all_o they_o that_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o to_o the_o ambassador_n and_o deputy_n of_o the_o christian_a prince_n and_o state_n meet_v at_o nimeguen_n to_o consult_v the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n r._n b._n a_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o hearty_a wellwisher_n to_o the_o christian_a world_n wish_n increase_v of_o grace_n and_o peace_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o sound_a judgement_n with_o heart_n incline_v and_o willing_a to_o receive_v and_o obey_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n let_v it_o not_o seem_v strange_a unto_o you_o who_o be_v man_n choose_v and_o authorize_v by_o the_o great_a monarch_n and_o state_n of_o europe_n to_o find_v out_o a_o speedy_a remedy_n for_o the_o present_a great_a trouble_n under_o which_o many_o of_o her_o inhabitant_n do_v groan_n as_o such_o who_o wisdom_n and_o prudence_n and_o ability_n have_v so_o recommend_v they_o to_o the_o world_n as_o to_o be_v judge_v fit_a for_o so_o great_a and_o difficult_a a_o work_n to_o be_v address_v unto_o by_o one_o who_o by_o the_o world_n may_v be_v esteem_v weak_a and_o foolish_a who_o advice_n be_v not_o usher_v unto_o you_o by_o the_o commission_n of_o any_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n nor_o second_v by_o the_o recommendation_n of_o any_o earthly_a state_n for_o since_o your_o work_n be_v that_o which_o concern_v all_o christian_n why_o may_v not_o every_o christian_a who_o feel_v himself_o stir_v up_o of_o the_o lord_n thereunto_o contribute_v therein_o and_o if_o they_o have_v place_n to_o be_v hear_v in_o this_o affair_n who_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n let_v it_o not_o seem_v heavy_a unto_o you_o to_o hear_v he_o that_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n be_v the_o head_n and_o governor_n and_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n the_o most-truly-christian_a and_o catholic_n king_n many_o of_o who_o subject_n be_v concern_v in_o this_o matter_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o many_o in_o hazzard_n for_o who_o he_o have_v shed_v his_o precious_a blood_n and_o yet_o who_o shall_v not_o seek_v to_o obtrude_v upon_o you_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o certainty_n of_o his_o commission_n because_o of_o his_o own_o testimony_n but_o leave_v it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o thing_n he_o therein_o deliver_v to_o the_o holy_a and_o pure_a witness_n of_o god_n in_o all_o your_o conscience_n to_o be_v receive_v or_o reject_v by_o you_o as_o it_o shall_v there_o be_v approve_v or_o not_o approve_v know_v then_o my_o friend_n that_o many_o and_o often_o time_n my_o soul_n have_v be_v deep_o bow_v down_o under_o the_o weighty_a sense_n of_o the_o present_a state_n of_o christendom_n and_o in_o secret_a before_o the_o lord_n i_o have_v mourn_v and_o bitter_o lament_v because_o thereof_o and_o as_o i_o be_v cross_v the_o sea_n and_o be_v the_o last_o summer_n in_o holland_n matter_n the_o burden_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o author_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o some_o part_n of_o germany_n the_o burden_n thereof_o fall_v often_o upon_o i_o and_o it_o several_a time_n come_v before_o i_o to_o write_v unto_o you_o what_o i_o then_o see_v and_o feel_v from_o god_n of_o these_o thing_n while_o i_o be_v in_o those_o part_n but_o i_o wait_v and_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o be_v hasty_a and_o now_o be_v return_v to_o my_o own_o country_n and_o at_o my_o own_o home_n i_o cheerful_o accept_v the_o fit_a season_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v put_v in_o my_o hand_n and_o call_v i_o to_o therein_o to_o signify_v unto_o you_o those_o thing_n which_o in_o his_o name_n and_o authority_n i_o be_o command_v to_o do_v and_o for_o this_o end_v the_o lord_n have_v show_v i_o what_o the_o cause_n be_v of_o all_o this_o mischief_n and_o confusion_n and_o desolation_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v make_v know_v unto_o you_o and_o deep_o and_o serious_o to_o be_v consider_v by_o you_o else_o you_o can_v never_o be_v able_a to_o apply_v the_o right_a remedy_n i_o speak_v of_o the_o primary_n and_o original_a cause_n remove_v the_o primary_n cause_n of_o mischief_n first_o to_o be_v remove_v as_o it_o proceed_v from_o he_o and_o be_v hatch_v by_o he_o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o mischief_n and_o the_o great_a enemy_n to_o as_o well_o as_o envyer_n of_o the_o true_a peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o all_o good_a christian_n and_o who_o sow_v in_o man_n heart_n that_o evil_a seed_n and_o foment_v that_o bad_a ground_n from_o which_o all_o evil_a rise_v for_o unless_o this_o be_v see_v discover_v and_o remove_v in_o the_o ground_n although_o the_o secondary_a and_o more_o immediate_a cause_n be_v see_v to_o wit_n the_o project_n design_n and_o council_n of_o man_n and_o in_o part_n be_v answer_v and_o remove_v by_o give_v way_n to_o some_o and_o take_v from_o other_o according_a as_o they_o be_v more_o or_o less_o formidable_a and_o considerable_a measure_v these_o thing_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n and_o carnal_a prudence_n and_o policy_n yet_o that_o be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o may_v allay_v the_o heat_n for_o a_o time_n but_o will_v not_o remove_v the_o evil_a and_o you_o in_o so_o do_v will_v prove_v but_o like_o those_o physician_n that_o do_v mitigate_v the_o pain_n and_o violence_n of_o a_o disease_n for_o a_o time_n but_o do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o ground_n and_o cause_n of_o it_o so_o that_o it_o short_o again_o return_v and_o in_o the_o end_n destroy_v he_o that_o be_v afflict_a with_o it_o the_o chief_a ground_n cause_n and_o root_n then_o of_o all_o this_o misery_n among_o all_o those_o call_a christian_n be_v because_o they_o be_v only_o such_o in_o name_n nature_n christian_n in_o name_n and_o not_o in_o nature_n and_o not_o in_o nature_n have_v only_o a_o form_n and_o profession_n of_o christianity_n in_o show_n and_o word_n but_o be_v still_o stranger_n yea_o and_o enemy_n to_o the_o life_n and_o virtue_n of_o it_o own_v god_n and_o christ_n in_o word_n but_o deny_v they_o in_o work_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o own_v they_o as_o his_o child_n nor_o disciple_n for_o while_o they_o say_v they_o be_v his_o follower_n while_o they_o preach_v and_o exalt_v his_o precept_n while_o they_o extol_v his_o life_n patience_n and_o meekness_n his_o self_n deny_v perfect_a resignation_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n yet_o themselves_o be_v out_o of_o it_o and_o so_o bring_v shame_n and_o reproach_n to_o that_o honourable_a name_n which_o they_o assume_v to_o themselves_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o give_v a_o occasion_n for_o infidel_n turk_n jew_n and_o atheist_n to_o profane_v and_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a name_n of_o jesus_n be_v it_o not_o so_o while_o so_o much_o ambition_n pride_n vanity_n wantonness_n and_o malice_n murder_n cruelty_n and_o oppression_n prince_n abomination_n abound_v in_o the_o court_n of_o christian_a prince_n yea_o and_o all_o manner_n of_o abomination_n abound_v and_o be_v open_o practise_v yea_o while_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v pattern_n and_o example_n of_o justice_n virtue_n and_o sobriety_n to_o other_o do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n exceed_v most_o in_o those_o thing_n so_o that_o the_o court_n of_o christian_a prince_n who_o while_n in_o word_n seem_v more_o to_o glory_n in_o be_v professor_n and_o protector_n of_o christianity_n than_o in_o their_o outward_a crown_n which_o shall_v be_v college_n of_o virtue_n and_o piety_n be_v most_o scene_n of_o great_a wickedness_n and_o nest_n and_o receptacle_n of_o all_o the_o baffoon_n stage-player_n and_o other_o vile_a vermin_n not_o fit_a to_o be_v mention_v i_o say_v be_v it_o not_o so_o while_o upon_o every_o slender_a pretext_n such_o as_o their_o own_o small_a discontent_n or_o that_o they_o judge_v the_o present_a peace_n they_o have_v with_o their_o neighbour_n can_v suit_v
as_o a_o foundation_n of_o which_o christ_n the_o word_n be_v the_o cornerstone_n succeed_v believer_n be_v to_o be_v build_v and_o i_o challenge_v all_o the_o disaffect_v society_n and_o form_n without_o distinction_n or_o these_o vniversalist_n i_o be_o upon_o to_o show_v any_o other_o manner_n of_o god_n appear_v to_o man_n in_o any_o age_n or_o that_o in_o the_o same_o age_n or_o by_o the_o primitive_a or_o first_o instrument_n of_o such_o appearance_n there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o dispensation_n or_o a_o justifiable_a declension_n from_o what_o they_o testify_v of_o and_o be_v the_o instrument_n to_o gather_v and_o settle_v people_n in_o so_o that_o to_o conclude_v universal_a love_n be_v a_o bless_a truth_n but_o with_o the_o degree_n limitation_n and_o distinction_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n set_v and_o give_v we_o who_o fruit_n it_o be_v and_o unto_o which_o we_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o take_v heed_n gal._n 5.22_o that_o we_o at_o all_o time_n love_v true_o and_o right_o not_o too_o little_a nor_o too_o much_o but_o consider_v the_o object_n and_o motive_n of_o our_o love_n and_o we_o can_v fail_v in_o that_o great_a duty_n of_o love_n to_o all_o this_o treatise_n of_o universal_a love_n be_v follow_v by_o another_o style_v a_o epistle_n of_o love_n publish_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o year_n writ_n and_o send_v by_o our_o author_n as_o a_o friendly_a advice_n to_o the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o several_a prince_n of_o europe_n meet_v at_o nimmegen_n to_o consult_v of_o the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n show_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o war_n and_o propose_v the_o best_a mean_n of_o peace_n to_o each_o of_o who_o also_o be_v give_v one_o of_o his_o apology_n which_o be_v all_o receive_v with_o respect_n this_o epistle_n have_v edification_n in_o it_o to_o our_o present_a time_n the_o original_a cause_n of_o war_n be_v not_o hard_a to_o assign_v the_o apostle_n james_n have_v tell_v it_o we_o long_o ago_o he_o ask_v and_o answer_v the_o question_n thus_o from_o whence_o come_v war_n and_o fight_n among_o you_o jam._n 1.1_o come_v they_o not_o hence_o even_o from_o your_o lust_n that_o war_n in_o your_o member_n it_o be_v what_o every_o one_o feel_v in_o himself_o that_o have_v not_o overcome_v those_o lust_n or_o who_o conscience_n be_v not_o sear_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n though_o it_o be_v also_o what_o very_o few_o make_v their_o due_a reflection_n upon_o else_o we_o shall_v hear_v of_o less_o blood_n and_o misery_n but_o if_o lust_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o war_n what_o be_v become_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n among_o those_o suppose_a christian_n and_o what_o be_v they_o that_o show_v a_o pleasure_n in_o the_o account_n of_o the_o bloody_a battle_n can_v a_o christian_a of_o christ_n make_v look_n upon_o the_o blood_n of_o man_n or_o hear_v of_o it_o without_o horror_n and_o distress_n of_o spirit_n less_o sure_o can_v they_o shed_v it_o or_o encourage_v those_o that_o have_v a_o delight_n or_o part_n in_o that_o man-slaying_a work_n but_o how_o low_a and_o gross_o be_v some_o profess_a christian_n fall_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o purity_n and_o power_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n &_o through_o suffering_n by_o they_o to_o we_o jud._n 3._o that_o hang_v their_o religion_n and_o gospel_n upon_o their_o sword_n and_o gun_n and_o pin_v it_o upon_o a_o arm_n of_o flesh_n as_o if_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v overcome_v of_o that_o which_o can_v touch_v it_o but_o how_o i_o pray_v do_v the_o primitive_a christian_n maintain_v their_o ground_n yea_o grow_v upon_o their_o adversary_n poor_a naked_a man_n and_o not_o of_o the_o great_a quality_n or_o capacity_n and_o final_o vanquish_v cruelty_n itself_o but_o by_o faith_n and_o patience_n hebr._n 11.33_o 42._o thus_o they_o convert_v executioner_n overcome_v emperor_n and_o army_n and_o by_o a_o successive_a course_n of_o meek_n and_o suffer_a integrity_n turn_v the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword_n quench_v the_o flame_n of_o fire_n with_o their_o own_o blood_n not_o the_o blood_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o final_o this_o holy_a constancy_n translate_v they_o from_o the_o theatre_n of_o slaughter_n to_o the_o palace_n and_o diadem_n of_o prince_n this_o bring_v to_o my_o remembrance_n a_o passage_n our_o author_n have_v in_o this_o book_n to_o this_o effect_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o a_o great_a tarnish_n and_o wither_v to_o the_o protestant_a cause_n than_o the_o professor_n of_o it_o betake_v themselves_o and_o that_o early_a to_o earthly_a power_n and_o weapon_n to_o preserve_v and_o promote_v it_o which_o be_v not_o the_o weapon_n of_o the_o apostolical_a warfare_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o nature_n power_n and_o glory_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n stand_v in_o a_o spirit_n of_o true_a reformation_n as_o well_o in_o life_n as_o doctrine_n as_o plain_o decay_v if_o not_o lose_v and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v for_o that_o reason_n that_o god_n will_v blow_v upon_o all_o other_o way_n of_o support_v it_o especial_o such_o as_o we_o think_v a_o fault_n in_o our_o enemy_n in_o worldly_a art_n and_o force_n if_o we_o will_v be_v zealous_a to_o purpose_n for_o the_o protestant_a cause_n let_v we_o look_v to_o god_n and_o not_o man_n examine_v ourselves_o try_v ourselves_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o luke_n 15.8_o 9_o see_v what_o be_v want_v in_o we_o both_o to_o god_n and_o man._n let_v we_o return_v home_o light_v our_o own_o candle_n and_o sweep_v our_o own_o house_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o silver_n we_o have_v lose_v the_o zeal_n power_n and_o purity_n of_o soul_n that_o make_v our_o worship_n acceptable_a our_o prayer_n prevalent_a our_o life_n blameless_a and_o a_o ornament_n to_o religion_n this_o faith_n this_o holiness_n this_o reformation_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v our_o own_o though_o we_o gilled_a the_o pill_n flatter_v ourselves_o and_o deceive_v other_o this_o spirit_n of_o reformation_n know_v no_o man_n no_o people_n no_o church_n after_o the_o flesh_n this_o go_v on_o overturning_a overturning_a all_o will-worship_n man-made_a faith_n humane_a invention_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n about_o religion_n till_o he_o reign_v in_o the_o soul_n who_o right_a it_o be_v to_o rule_v it_o be_v a_o holy_a leaven_n o_o reader_n that_o leaven_n the_o whole_a lump_n into_o its_o own_o nature_n and_o make_v fall_v matt._n 13.33_o 2_o pet._n 1.4_o degenerate_a earthly-minded_n man_n that_o receive_v it_o a_o partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n this_o the_o early_a and_o pure_a protestant_n aim_v at_o heb._n 11._o that_o have_v their_o eye_n to_o a_o eternal_a country_n the_o city_n who_o builder_n and_o maker_n be_v god_n free_a of_o humane_a consideration_n and_o the_o mixture_n of_o worldly_a interest_n and_o advantage_n and_o to_o evidence_n the_o truth_n of_o what_o i_o say_v read_v the_o account_n that_o the_o faithful_a writer_n of_o those_o time_n have_v oblige_v we_o with_o and_o you_o shall_v taste_v the_o same_o thing_n even_o among_o the_o martyr_n themselves_o where_o the_o country_n and_o mechanical_a people_n those_o of_o least_o account_n outdo_v those_o of_o title_n learning_n and_o preferment_n among_o churchman_n themselves_o as_o to_o the_o life_n and_o purity_n of_o reformation_n and_o zeal_n and_o courage_n for_o it_o as_o occasion_n offer_v to_o show_v both_o wherefore_o o_o you_o protestant_n of_o all_o sort_n return_v return_v return_v to_o your_o first_o love_n and_o work_n before_o it_o be_v too_o late_o hos._n 12.6_o rev._n 2.5_o joel_n 2._o zach._n 1.3_o rend_v your_o heart_n and_o not_o your_o garment_n and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n you_o have_v but_o a_o little_a time_n and_o a_o great_a account_n to_o give_v think_v not_o to_o be_v long_o safe_a from_o your_o enemy_n without_o while_o you_o entertain_v your_o great_a enemy_n within_o in_o despite_n of_o god_n his_o spirit_n and_o scripture_n and_o your_o own_o pretension_n to_o reformation_n while_o you_o have_v so_o many_o sin_n on_o your_o enemy_n side_n to_o fight_v against_o you_o they_o will_v ever_o have_v power_n to_o vex_v you_o if_o not_o to_o destroy_v you_o and_o if_o in_o some_o evil_n your_o enemy_n exceed_v yet_o in_o moral_a one_o you_o be_v not_o a_o jot_n behind_o they_o and_o remember_v they_o have_v their_o bead_n but_o you_o have_v your_o bibles_n in_o your_o hand_n when_o you_o transgress_v god_n almighty_n make_v you_o sensible_a with_o true_a and_o godly_a sorrow_n a_o repentance_n never_o to_o be_v repent_v of_o that_o you_o may_v overcome_v your_o enemy_n by_o your_o faith_n 2_o cor._n 7.9_o 10._o prayer_n and_o love_n and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o your_o example_n recommend_v your_o religion_n
integrity_n of_o the_o quaker_n doctrine_n be_v the_o second_o time_n justify_v and_o clear_v from_o the_o reiterate_v clamorous_a but_o causeless_o calumny_n of_o this_o cavil_v catechist_n by_o robert_n barclay_n john_n 16.2_o they_o will_v put_v you_o out_o of_o their_o synagogue_n yea_o the_o time_n come_v that_o whosoever_o kill_v you_o will_v think_v he_o do_v god_n good_a service_n 1_o john_n 4.4_o you_o be_v of_o god_n little_a child_n because_o great_a be_v he_o that_o be_v in_o you_o than_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n 3_o john_n 10._o wherefore_o if_o i_o come_v i_o will_v remember_v his_o deed_n which_o he_o do_v prate_v against_o we_o with_o malicious_a word_n london_n print_v for_o thomas_n northcott_n in_o george-yard_n in_o lumbard-street_n 1691._o the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n reader_n have_v serious_o peruse_v w._n m._n his_o late_a animadversion_n upon_o my_o book_n i_o find_v my_o judgement_n of_o it_o though_o a_o party_n concern_v to_o jump_v with_o that_o which_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o several_a judicious_a person_n who_o neither_o own_a nor_o walk_v in_o that_o profession_n i_o be_o in_o and_o therefore_o can_v the_o less_o be_v suspect_v of_o partiality_n viz._n that_o they_o contain_v nothing_o of_o a_o solid_a or_o satisfactory_a reply_n for_o though_o he_o seem_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o all_o the_o particular_n mention_v yet_o he_o omit_v in_o many_o more_o than_o the_o half_a of_o what_o be_v say_v by_o i_o concern_v they_o and_o against_o that_o which_o he_o do_v mention_n in_o my_o name_n his_o most_o frequent_a argument_n be_v without_o any_o proof_n have_v no_o other_o bottom_n but_o his_o own_o judgement_n thought_n and_o conjecture_n whereby_o it_o seem_v forget_v or_o mistake_v his_o work_n he_o play_v the_o catechist_n rather_o than_o the_o disputant_n this_o put_v i_o to_o some_o stand_n whether_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o give_v he_o any_o reply_n though_o true_o such_o as_o will_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o compare_v his_o with_o my_o last_o will_v need_v little_o further_o yet_o know_v how_o many_o be_v apt_a to_o take_v thing_n upon_o trust_n and_o to_o receive_v misrepresentation_n concern_v we_o who_o be_v a_o people_n so_o general_o reproach_v i_o find_v it_o expedient_a to_o write_v this_o succinct_a reply_n which_o may_v lead_v the_o reader_n to_o a_o narrow_a observation_n of_o the_o invalidity_n of_o w._n m._n his_o work_n against_o we_o and_o may_v present_v in_o short_a his_o most_o obvious_a omission_n his_o most_o manifest_a contradiction_n unveil_v his_o dis-ingenuity_n lay_v open_a his_o weakness_n and_o show_v his_o unstability_n especial_o so_o far_o as_o he_o have_v deserve_v in_o most_o of_o these_o argument_n he_o use_v in_o his_o dialogue_n as_o not_o be_v able_a further_o to_o maintain_v they_o and_o discover_v how_o faint_o such_o new_a one_o as_o he_o do_v now_o bring_v forth_o militate_fw-la against_o we_o let_v it_o not_o startle_v thou_o that_o so_o small_a a_o bulk_n as_o this_o be_v shall_v answer_v he_o for_o thou_o may_v perceive_v several_a page_n of_o his_o take_v up_o in_o the_o capital_a letter_n of_o the_o content_n of_o his_o many_o head_n and_o subdivide_v section_n which_o make_v it_o not_o unlike_o the_o city_n mindus_n whereof_o the_o ancient_n speak_v who_o gate_n be_v so_o disproportionable_a in_o greatness_n to_o the_o quantity_n of_o the_o town_n that_o a_o certain_a philosopher_n be_v say_v to_o have_v advise_v the_o citizen_n to_o shut_v they_o lest_o the_o city_n shall_v flee_v out_o of_o they_o we_o may_v very_o well_o so_o far_o extend_v the_o parallel_n as_o to_o aver_v that_o the_o contain_a in_o no_o way_n answer_n to_o the_o content_n there_o be_v a_o deal_n of_o more_o head_n than_o either_o heart_n or_o horn_n several_a section_n but_o small_a substance_n and_o a_o great_a show_n of_o method_n but_o very_o little_a matter_n i_o confess_v i_o may_v have_v far_o more_o enlarge_v this_o dup_o have_v i_o take_v notice_n of_o all_o the_o impertinency_n which_o herein_o come_v under_o my_o observation_n but_o that_o the_o more_o judicious_a and_o intelligent_a will_v ascribe_v these_o thing_n not_o so_o much_o to_o the_o cause_n as_o his_o weakness_n who_o manage_v it_o i_o desire_v to_o contend_v for_o truth_n and_o not_o for_o victory_n know_v though_o i_o be_v so_o mind_v the_o triumph_n shall_v be_v but_o small_a that_o i_o can_v gain_v from_o so_o inconsiderable_a a_o antagonist_n therefore_o reader_n i_o shall_v wish_v thou_o for_o the_o truth_n be_v sake_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v find_v true_o own_v it_o and_o not_o something_o else_o in_o stead_n of_o it_o serious_o to_o read_v and_o peruse_v these_o paper_n with_o such_o as_o relate_v unto_o they_o and_o may_v that_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o teach_v all_o thing_n so_o direct_v thy_o understanding_n as_o thou_o may_v discern_v what_o doctrine_n be_v true_o and_o real_o most_o according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o thou_o be_v hearty_o invite_v in_o this_o matter_n to_o search_v and_o peruse_v urie_n the_o 24_o of_o the_o 10_o month_n common_o call_v december_n 1671._o by_o a_o wellwisher_n of_o thy_o soul_n and_o of_o all_o man_n r._n b._n william_n mitchell_n unmask_v year_n 1672_o or_o the_o stagger_v instability_n of_o the_o pretend_a stable_a christian_n discover_v his_o omission_n observe_v and_o weakness_n unvail_v etc._n etc._n that_o which_o first_o present_v itself_o to_o my_o view_n be_v w._n m._n his_o epistle_n direct_v to_o i_o and_o the_o quaker_n in_o and_o about_o aberdeen_n which_o he_o prefix_n as_o his_o consideration_n upon_o my_o preface_n but_o that_o which_o be_v the_o substantial_a part_n of_o it_o he_o have_v leave_v unanswered_a for_o my_o preface_n be_v to_o show_v the_o method_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o aberdeen_n procedure_n against_o the_o quaker_n give_v account_n of_o most_o if_o not_o all_o the_o paper_n have_v pass_v betwixt_o they_o and_o also_o how_o by_o their_o instigation_n some_o of_o we_o have_v be_v imprison_v particular_o the_o falseness_n of_o g._n meldrum_n his_o way_n with_o we_o first_o in_o pulpit_n to_o accuse_v we_o as_o heretic_n and_o then_o in_o private_a to_o desire_v to_o know_v of_o we_o our_o principle_n but_o all_o this_o he_o have_v whole_o wave_v it_o seem_v he_o either_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o defend_v his_o own_o nor_o his_o brethren_n double_a deal_n with_o we_o as_o to_o what_o he_o mention_n i_o take_v notice_n first_o of_o his_o deny_v that_o any_o in_o or_o about_o aberdeen_n have_v reproach_v the_o quaker_n as_o dement_v distract_v or_o bodily_a possess_v check_v i_o for_o take_v thing_n upon_o trust._n well_o it_o suffice_v i_o that_o they_o be_v ashamed_a of_o such_o falsehood_n though_o if_o need_v be_v i_o can_v instance_n that_o i_o have_v ground_n to_o say_v so_o second_o i_o take_v notice_n how_o that_o not_o be_v willing_a whole_o to_o clear_v we_o he_o say_v some_o of_o we_o in_o england_n have_v give_v ground_n to_o be_v so_o charge_v by_o their_o extraordinary_o tremble_v etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v strange_a w._n m._n shall_v so_o far_o forget_v himself_o as_o to_o account_v this_o a_o ground_n to_o charge_v people_n as_o dement_v etc._n etc._n see_v there_o be_v a_o season_n wherein_o himself_o acknowledge_v he_o seldom_o or_o never_o go_v to_o the_o pulpit_n without_o sensible_a tremble_v which_o if_o he_o dare_v to_o deny_v i_o offer_v to_o prove_v by_o undeniable_a testimony_n as_o to_o what_o he_o add_v of_o woman_n go_v naked_a in_o the_o street_n and_o some_o offering_n to_o raise_v the_o dead_a allege_v for_o proof_n samuel_n clark_n the_o newcastle_n minister_n paget_n heresiography_n i_o answer_v as_o these_o calumny_n have_v be_v particular_o answer_v by_o our_o friend_n in_o england_n so_o they_o signify_v no_o more_o against_o we_o be_v write_v by_o our_o declare_a enemy_n than_o cochlaeus_fw-la lie_v against_o luther_n particular_o that_o he_o assay_v to_o cast_v out_o devil_n or_o what_o the_o popish_a author_n write_v of_o calvin_n that_o he_o make_v a_o live_a man_n counterfeit_n himself_o dead_a that_o so_o he_o may_v raise_v he_o and_o that_o beza_n be_v stigmatise_v for_o sodomy_n and_o much_o more_o of_o this_o kind_n three_o the_o thing_n i_o observe_v be_v his_o compare_v we_o to_o john_n of_o leyden_n and_o ignatius_n loyola_n and_o that_o because_o they_o preach_v in_o the_o street_n cry_v down_o wear_v of_o ring_n and_o other_o superfluity_n as_o we_o do_v be_v against_o needless_a salutation_n speak_v much_o of_o mortification_n and_o pretend_v to_o or_o expect_v immediate_a revelation_n leyden_n john_n of_o leyden_n but_o our_o resemble_v they_o in_o these_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n command_v and_o practise_v will_v not_o prove_v the_o jesuit_n our_o grandfather_n as_o w._n
and_o observance_n a._n 15._o a._n gal._n 6.14_o 15._o but_o god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v glory_n save_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o the_o world_n be_v crucify_a unto_o i_o and_o i_o unto_o the_o world_n for_o in_o jesus_n christ_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o a_o new_a creature_n q._n what_o speak_v christ_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o saint_n with_o he_o a._n at_o that_o day_n you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n 14.20_o john_n 14.20_o and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o 5._o john_n 15.4_o 5._o as_o the_o branch_n can_v bear_v fruit_n of_o itself_o except_o it_o abide_v in_o the_o vine_n no_o more_o can_v you_o except_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o i_o be_o the_o vine_n you_o be_v the_o branch_n he_o that_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o the_o same_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n for_o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o neither_o pray_v i_o for_o these_o alone_a but_o for_o they_o also_o 23._o john_n 17.20_o 21_o 22_o 23._o which_o shall_v believe_v in_o i_o through_o their_o word_n that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o in_o we_o that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v it_o that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o and_o the_o glory_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o have_v give_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o even_o as_o we_o be_v one_o i_o in_o they_o and_o thou_o in_o i_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o and_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o and_o have_v love_v they_o as_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o q._n what_o say_v the_o apostle_n paul_n to_o this_o purpose_n a._n for_o both_o he_o that_o sanctify_v and_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v 2.11_o hebr._n 2.11_o be_v all_o of_o one_o for_o which_o cause_n he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o call_v they_o brethren_n q._n what_o say_v the_o apostle_n peter_n a._n whereby_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o exceed_v great_a and_o precious_a promise_n 1.4_o 2_o pet._n 1.4_o that_o by_o these_o you_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n have_v escape_v the_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n through_o lust._n chap._n v._o concern_v the_o light_n wherewith_o jesus_n christ_n have_v enlighten_v every_o man_n the_o universality_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o god_n grace_n to_o all_o the_o world_n make_v manifest_a therein_o question_n wherein_o consist_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o fallen_n and_o lose_v man_n answer_n for_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n 3.16_o john_n 3.16_o that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n in_o this_o be_v manifest_v the_o love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o because_o that_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n 4.9_o 1_o john_n 4.9_o that_o we_o may_v live_v through_o he_o q._n what_o be_v intend_v here_o by_o the_o world_n all_o and_o every_o man_n or_o only_o a_o few_o a._n but_o we_o see_v jesus_n who_o be_v make_v a_o little_a low_o than_o the_o angel_n for_o the_o suffering_n of_o death_n crown_v with_o glory_n and_o honour_n 2.9_o hebr._n 2.9_o that_o he_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shall_v taste_v death_n for_o every_o man._n 2._o 1_o john_n 2.1_o 2._o and_o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n q._n methinks_v the_o apostle_n john_n be_v very_o plain_a there_o in_o mention_v the_o whole_a world_n which_o must_v be_v not_o only_o the_o saint_n but_o all_o other_o seeing_z he_o distinguish_v the_o world_n from_o himself_o and_o all_o the_o saint_n to_o who_o he_o then_o write_v what_o say_v paul_n elsewhere_o in_o this_o matter_n a._n christ_n in_o you_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n who_o we_o preach_v warn_v every_o man_n 28._o col._n 1.27_o 28._o and_o teach_v every_o man_n in_o all_o wisdom_n that_o we_o may_v present_v every_o man_n perfect_a in_o christ_n jesus_n 6._o 1_o tim._n 2.3_o 4_o 6._o i_o exhort_v therefore_o that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o this_o be_v good_a and_o acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n who_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n who_o give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o all_o to_o be_v testify_v in_o due_a time_n q._n what_o be_v the_o apostle_n peter_n be_v testimony_n in_o this_o a._n the_o lord_n be_v not_o slack_a concern_v his_o promise_n as_o some_o man_n count_v slackness_n but_o be_v long-suffering_a to_o us-ward_n 3.9_o 2_o pet._n 3.9_o not_o willing_a that_o any_o shall_v perish_v but_o that_o all_o shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n q._n be_v there_o any_o more_o scripture-passage_n that_o prove_v this_o thing_n a._n say_v unto_o they_o as_o i_o live_v say_v the_o lord_n god_n i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a 33.11_o ezek._n 33.11_o but_o that_o the_o wicked_a turn_n from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v the_o lord_n be_v gracious_a and_o full_a of_o compassion_n slow_a to_o anger_n and_o of_o great_a mercy_n 9_o psal._n 145.8_o 9_o the_o lord_n be_v good_a to_o all_o and_o his_o tender_a mercy_n be_v over_o all_o his_o work_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_n the_o world_n unto_o himself_o 5.19_o 2_o cor._n 5.19_o q._n see_v then_o by_o these_o scripture_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v hold_v out_o to_o all_o that_o all_o may_v have_v be_v or_o may_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n what_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o those_o who_o assert_v that_o god_n nor_o christ_n never_o purpose_v love_n nor_o salvation_n to_o a_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n and_o that_o the_o come_v and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n never_o be_v intend_v nor_o can_v be_v useful_a to_o their_o justification_n but_o will_v and_o must_v be_v effectual_a for_o their_o condemnation_n even_o according_a to_o god_n purpose_n who_o from_o their_o very_a infancy_n to_o their_o grave_n withhold_v from_o they_o all_o mean_n of_o salvation_n what_o say_v the_o scripture_n to_o such_o a._n for_o god_n send_v not_o his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n to_o condemn_v the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o world_n through_o he_o may_v be_v save_v 17._o john_n 3_o 17._o i_o be_o come_v a_o light_n into_o the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o i_o 47._o john_n 12.46_o 47._o shall_v not_o abide_v in_o darkness_n and_o if_o any_o man_n hear_v my_o word_n and_o believe_v not_o i_o judge_v he_o not_o for_o i_o come_v not_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n but_o to_o save_v the_o world_n q._n from_o what_o scripture_n then_o come_v these_o man_n to_o wrest_v a_o opinion_n so_o contrary_a to_o truth_n a._n for_o the_o child_n be_v not_o yet_o bear_v neither_o have_v do_v any_o good_a or_o evil_a 13._o rom._n 9_o 11_o 12_o 13._o that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n according_a to_o election_n may_v stand_v it_o be_v say_v unto_o she_o the_o elder_n shall_v serve_v the_o young_a as_o it_o be_v write_v jacob_n have_v i_o love_v but_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v q._n i_o perceive_v in_o that_o scripture_n it_o be_v only_o say_v before_o the_o child_n be_v bear_v the_o elder_n shall_v serve_v the_o young_a these_o other_o word_n jacob_n have_v i_o love_v esau_n have_v i_o hate_v be_v mention_v out_o of_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n who_o write_v they_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o both_o be_v dead_a do_v not_o the_o scripture_n mention_v any_o other_o cause_n of_o god_n hate_v esau_n than_o mere_o his_o decree_n what_o say_v the_o same_o apostle_n elsewhere_o a._n lest_o there_o be_v any_o fornication_n or_o profane_a person_n as_o esau_n 17._o hebr._n 12.16_o 17._o who_o for_o one_o morsel_n of_o meat_n sell_v his_o birthright_n for_o you_o know_v how_o that_o afterward_o when_o he_o will_v have_v inherit_v the_o blessing_n he_o be_v reject_v q._n but_o see_v that_o such_o allege_v that_o it_o be_v because_o of_o adam_n be_v sin_n that_o many_o even_a child_n be_v damn_v do_v not_o the_o scripture_n aver_v that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v as_o large_a to_o heal_n as_o adam_n be_v sin_n can_v condemn_v a._n for_o if_o through_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o many_o be_v dead_a 18._o rom._n 5.15_o 18._o much_o more_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n
have_v taste_v of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o have_v taste_v the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v if_o they_o shall_v fall_v away_o to_o renew_v they_o again_o unto_o repentance_n see_v they_o crucify_v to_o themselves_o the_o son_n of_o god_n afresh_o and_o put_v he_o to_o a_o open_a shame_n look_v diligent_o lest_o any_o man_n fail_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 12.15_o hebr._n 12.15_o lest_o any_o root_n of_o bitterness_n spring_v up_o trouble_v you_o and_o thereby_o many_o be_v defile_v q_o do_v he_o speak_v this_o only_a by_o supposition_n or_o do_v he_o assert_v it_o not_o only_o possible_a but_o certain_a a._n for_o the_o time_n will_v come_v 4._o 2_o tim._n 4_o 3_o 4._o when_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v sound_a doctrine_n but_o after_o their_o own_o lust_n shall_v they_o heap_v to_o themselves_o teacher_n have_v itch_a ear_n and_o they_o shall_v turn_v away_o their_o ear_n from_o the_o truth_n and_o shall_v be_v turn_v unto_o fable_n q._n do_v the_o apostle_n even_o judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o guard_v such_o a_o one_o as_o his_o belove_a son_n timothy_n against_o this_o hazzard_n a._n this_o charge_n i_o commit_v unto_o thou_o son_n timothy_n 19_o 1_o tim._n 1.18_o 19_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n which_o go_v before_o on_o thou_o that_o thou_o by_o they_o may_v war_v the_o good_a warfare_n hold_v faith_n in_o a_o good_a conscience_n which_o some_o have_v put_v away_o concern_v faith_n have_v make_v shipwreck_n for_o the_o love_n of_o money_n be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_a 4.10_o 2_o tim._n 4.10_o which_o while_o some_o covet_v after_o they_o have_v err_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o pierce_v themselves_o through_o with_o many_o sorrow_n 18._o 2_o tim._n 17.17_o 18._o and_o their_o word_n will_v eat_v as_o do_v a_o canker_n of_o who_o be_v hymeneus_n and_o philetus_n who_o concern_v the_o true_a faith_n have_v err_v say_v that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v pass_v already_o and_o overthrow_v the_o faith_n of_o some_o q._n do_v the_o apostle_n any_o where_n express_v his_o fear_n of_o this_o as_o a_o thing_n that_o may_v happen_v to_o any_o number_n of_o people_n who_o once_o true_o receive_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n a._n well_o because_o of_o unbelief_n they_o be_v break_v off_o 11.20_o rom._n 11.20_o and_o thou_o stand_v by_o faith_n be_v not_o highminded_a but_o fear_v now_o the_o spirit_n speak_v express_o 4.1_o 1_o tim._n 4.1_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n for_o this_o cause_n 3.5_o 1_o thess._n 3.5_o when_o i_o can_v no_o long_o forbear_v i_o send_v to_o know_v your_o faith_n lest_o by_o some_o mean_v the_o tempter_n have_v tempt_v you_o and_o our_o labour_n be_v in_o vain_a q._n what_o be_v the_o apostle_n peter_n mind_n do_v he_o judge_v that_o such_o as_o have_v know_v the_o right_a way_n may_v forsake_v it_o a._n 22._o a._n 2_o pet._n 2.14_o 15_o 18_o 20_o 21_o 22._o curse_a child_n which_o have_v forsake_v the_o righteous_a way_n and_o be_v go_v astray_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o balaam_n the_o son_n of_o bezor_n who_o love_v the_o way_n of_o unrighteousness_n but_o be_v rebuke_v for_o his_o iniquity_n the_o dumb_a ass_n speak_v with_o man_n voice_n forbid_v the_o madness_n of_o the_o prophet_n these_o be_v well_n without_o water_n cloud_n that_o be_v carry_v with_o a_o tempest_n to_o who_o the_o mist_n of_o darkness_n be_v reserve_v for_o ever_o for_o when_o they_o speak_v great_a swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n they_o allure_v through_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n through_o much_o wantonness_n those_o that_o be_v clean_o escape_v from_o they_o who_o live_v in_o error_n for_o if_o after_o they_o have_v escape_v the_o pollution_n of_o the_o world_n through_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n they_o be_v again_o entangle_v therein_o and_o overcome_v the_o latter_a end_n be_v worse_a with_o they_o than_o the_o beginning_n for_o it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o they_o not_o to_o have_v know_v the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n than_o after_o they_o have_v know_v it_o to_o turn_v from_o the_o holy_a commandment_n deliver_v unto_o they_o but_o it_o be_v happen_v to_o they_o according_a to_o the_o true_a proverb_n the_o dog_n be_v turn_v to_o his_o vomit_n and_o the_o sow_n that_o be_v wash_v to_o her_o wallow_n in_o the_o mire_n q._n give_v he_o any_o caution_n to_o they_o that_o stand_v as_o suppose_v they_o may_v also_o fall_v 3.17_o 2_o pet._n 3.17_o a._n you_o therefore_o beloved_n see_v you_o know_v these_o thing_n before_o beware_v lest_o you_o also_o be_v lead_v away_o with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o wicked_a fall_v from_o your_o own_o steadfastness_n q._n may_v a_o man_n be_v true_o a_o branch_n in_o christ_n or_o a_o real_a member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o afterward_o be_v cut_v off_o 15.6_o john_n 15.6_o a._n if_o any_o man_n abide_v not_o in_o i_o he_o be_v cast_v forth_o as_o a_o branch_n and_o be_v wither_a q_o may_v a_o righteous_a man_n then_o depart_v from_o his_o righteousness_n 33.13_o ez●k_n 18.26_o and_o 33.13_o a._n but_o when_o the_o righteous_a man_n turn_v away_o from_o his_o righteousness_n and_o commit_v iniquity_n and_o die_v in_o they_o for_o his_o iniquity_n that_o he_o have_v do_v shall_v he_o die_v q._n may_v a_o believer_n come_v to_o such_o a_o condition_n in_o this_o life_n from_o which_o he_o can_v fall_v away_o 3.12_o rev._n 3.12_o a._n him_n that_o overcome_v will_v i_o make_v a_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o my_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v go_v no_o more_o out_o and_o i_o will_v write_v upon_o he_o the_o name_n of_o my_o god_n which_o be_v new_a jerusalem_n who_o come_v down_o out_o of_o heaven_n from_o my_o god_n and_o will_v write_v upon_o he_o my_o new_a name_n q._n may_v such_o a_o one_o come_v to_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o be_v in_o this_o condition_n 39_o rom._n 8.38_o 39_o a._n for_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n chap._n ix_o concern_v the_o church_n and_o ministry_n question_n what_o be_v the_o church_n answer_n but_o if_o i_o tarry_v long_o 15._o 1_o tim._n 3_o 15._o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o behave_v thyself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n q._n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n a._n who_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n 2.19_o col._n 113._o and_o 2.19_o and_o have_v translate_v we_o into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n and_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n from_o which_o all_o the_o body_n by_o joint_n and_o band_n have_v nourishment_n minister_v and_o knit_v together_o increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n q._n what_o kind_n of_o person_n make_v the_o church_n a._n they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v in_o christ_n jesus_n 2.47_o 1_o cor._n 1.2_o act_n 2.47_o and_o the_o lord_n add_v to_o the_o church_n daily_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v q._n have_v not_o christ_n appoint_v any_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n a._n wherefore_o he_o say_v when_o he_o ascend_v up_o on_o high_a 11.12_o ephes._n 4.8_o 11.12_o he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a and_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n and_o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o some_o teacher_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n q._n what_o kind_n of_o man_n shall_v such_o as_o be_v teacher_n and_o overseer_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a._n a_o bishop_n then_o must_v be_v blameless_a the_o husband_n of_o one_o wife_n 7._o 1_o tim._n 3.2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o vigilant_a sober_a of_o good_a behaviour_n give_v to_o hospitality_n apt_a to_o teach_v not_o give_v to_o wine_n no_o striker_n not_o greedy_a of_o filthy_a lucre_n but_o patient_n not_o a_o brawler_n not_o covetous_a one_o that_o rule_v well_o his_o own_o house_n have_v his_o child_n in_o subjection_n with_o all_o gravity_n for_o if_o a_o man_n know_v not_o how_o to_o rule_v his_o own_o house_n how_o shall_v he_o take_v care_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n not_o a_o novice_n lest_o be_v lift_v up_o with_o pride_n he_o fall_v into_o the_o
preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n and_o what_o weight_n his_o and_o james_n word_n have_v in_o the_o contest_v about_o circumcision_n towards_o the_o bring_v the_o matter_n to_o a_o conclusion_n act_v 15._o yet_o that_o we_o may_v see_v infallibility_n be_v not_o inseparable_o annex_v to_o he_o he_o be_v find_v blamable_a in_o a_o certain_a matter_n gal._n 2.11_o notwithstanding_o his_o sentence_n be_v positive_o receive_v in_o many_o particular_n so_o also_o the_o apostle_n paul_n argue_v from_o his_o gather_v of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o galatia_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v follower_n of_o he_o and_o positive_o conclude_v in_o divers_a thing_n and_o upon_o this_o supposition_n exhort_v the_o church_n both_o he_o and_o peter_n in_o many_o passage_n heretofore_o mention_v which_o i_o will_v not_o to_o avoid_v repetition_n again_o rehearse_v to_o obey_v the_o elder_n that_o watch_v for_o they_o to_o hold_v such_o in_o reputation_n and_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o they_o that_o have_v addict_v themselves_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o saint_n 1_o cor._n 16.15_o 16._o also_o we_o see_v how_o the_o lord_n make_v use_v of_o john_n his_o belove_a disciple_n to_o inform_v and_o reprove_v the_o seven_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o no_o doubt_n john_n the_o rest_n by_o the_o usual_a computation_n be_v at_o that_o time_n all_o remove_v be_v then_o the_o most-noted_n and_o famous_a elder_a alive_a and_o indeed_o i_o mind_v not_o where_o under_o the_o gospel_n christ_n have_v use_v any_o other_o method_n but_o that_o he_o always_o in_o reveal_v his_o will_n have_v make_v use_n of_o such_o as_o he_o himself_o have_v before_o appoint_v elder_n and_o officer_n in_o his_o church_n though_o it_o be_v far_o from_o we_o to_o limit_v the_o lord_n so_o as_o to_o exclude_v any_o from_o this_o privilege_n nor_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n will_v the_o possibility_n hereof_o be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n to_o allow_v every_o obscure_a member_n to_o stand_v up_o and_o offer_v to_o rule_n judge_n and_o condemn_v the_o whole_a body_n nor_o yet_o be_v it_o without_o cause_n that_o such_o a_o one_o message_n be_v jealouse_v and_o call_v in_o question_n unless_o it_o have_v very_o great_a evidence_n and_o be_v bottom_v upon_o some_o very_a weighty_a and_o solid_a cause_n and_o foundation_n and_o god_n do_v so_o furnish_v those_o who_o he_o raise_v up_o in_o a_o singular_a manner_n of_o which_o as_o i_o say_v i_o mind_v no_o instance_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o in_o the_o old_a we_o see_v though_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o little_a david_n shall_v oppose_v himself_o to_o the_o great_a goliath_n yet_o he_o have_v before_o that_o kill_v both_o the_o lion_n and_o the_o bear_n which_o be_v no_o less_o improbable_a and_o which_o of_o all_o be_v most_o observable_a be_v before_o that_o time_n by_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o prophet_n anoint_v king_n of_o israel_n compare_v the_o 16_o and_o 17_o chap._n of_o the_o 1_o st_z of_o samuel_n now_o as_o to_o the_o three_o that_o any_o particular_a person_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la or_o effectual_o assert_v 3_o give_v out_o a_o positive_a judgement_n prove_v be_v no_o encroach_a nor_o impose_v upon_o their_o brethren_n conscience_n be_v necessary_o include_v in_o what_o be_v say_v before_o upon_o which_o for_o further_a probation_n there_o will_v only_o need_v this_o short_a reflection_n that_o for_o any_o member_n or_o member_n in_o obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n to_o give_v forth_o a_o positive_a judgement_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v their_o proper_a place_n and_o office_n they_o be_v call_v to_o it_o and_o so_o for_o they_o to_o exercise_v that_o place_n in_o the_o body_n which_o the_o head_n move_v they_o to_o be_v not_o to_o usurp_v authority_n over_o their_o fellow-member_n as_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n to_o submit_v and_o obey_v it_o be_v the_o place_n of_o some_o so_o to_o do_v be_v not_o a_o renounce_v a_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n see_v the_o spirit_n lead_v they_o so_o to_o do_v and_o not_o to_o obey_v in_o case_n the_o judgement_n be_v according_a to_o truth_n and_o the_o spirit_n lead_v to_o it_o be_v no_o doubt_n both_o offensive_a and_o sinful_a and_o that_o all_o this_o may_v be_v suppose_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n without_o absurdity_n and_o so_o establish_v the_o abovementioned_a proposition_n will_v appear_v by_o a_o short_a review_n of_o the_o former_a passage_n if_o that_o peter_n and_o james_n their_o give_v a_o positive_a judgement_n in_o the_o case_n of_o difference_n in_o divers_a particular_n do_v not_o infer_v they_o to_o be_v imposer_n so_o neither_o will_v any_o so_o do_v now_o be_v lead_v to_o it_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n every_o one_o may_v easy_o make_v the_o application_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o for_o any_o to_o have_v stand_v up_o and_o resist_v their_o judgement_n pretend_v a_o vnclearness_n or_o so_o and_o thereby_o hold_v up_o the_o difference_n after_o their_o sentence_n break_v the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n thing_n be_v conclude_v with_o a_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o i_o say_v if_o such_o will_v have_v give_v just_a cause_n of_o offence_n 15.21_o act_n 15.21_o and_o have_v be_v cut_v off_o as_o despiser_n of_o dignity_n of_o old_a will_v not_o the_o like_a case_n now_o occur_v hold_v the_o same_o conclusion_n now_o whether_o those_o proposition_n do_v not_o hold_v upon_o the_o principle_n before_o lay_v down_o and_o prove_v i_o leave_v to_o every_o judicious_a and_o impartial_a reader_n to_o judge_v moreover_o we_o see_v how_o positive_a the_o apostle_n paul_n be_v in_o many_o particular_n throughout_o all_o his_o epistle_n insomuch_o as_o he_o say_v 2_o thess._n ult_n v._o 14._o if_o any_o man_n obey_v not_o our_o word_n by_o this_o epistle_n note_v that_o man_n and_o have_v no_o company_n with_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v ashamed_a and_o in_o many_o more_o place_n beforementioned_a where_o he_o command_v they_o both_o to_o obey_v he_o and_o several_a other_o into_o submission_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o truth_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n lead_v into_o who_o be_v appoint_v no_o doubt_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o be_v ruler_n among_o they_o and_o yet_o who_o will_v say_v that_o either_o the_o apostle_n do_v more_o than_o he_o ought_v in_o command_v or_o they_o less_o than_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o in_o submit_v and_o yet_o neither_o be_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a or_o more_o than_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o themselves_o lead_v they_o to_o or_o allow_v they_o in_o and_o if_o the_o church_n of_o god_n bear_v any_o parity_n or_o proportion_n now_o in_o these_o day_n with_o what_o it_o do_v of_o old_a as_o i_o know_v no_o reason_n why_o it_o shall_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v now_o be_v suppose_v to_o take_v effect_n that_o do_v then_o and_o also_o be_v lawful_o do_v upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n proceed_v from_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o establish_v upon_o the_o same_o basis_n and_o foundation_n and_o thus_o much_o as_o to_o that_o part_n to_o show_v in_o who_o the_o power_n of_o decision_n be_v which_o be_v serious_o and_o impartial_o consider_v be_v sufficient_a to_o clear_v we_o from_o the_o tyranny_n either_o of_o popery_n or_o any_o other_o of_o that_o nature_n with_o those_o that_o be_v not_o either_o wilful_o blind_a or_o very_o ignorant_a of_o popish_a principle_n as_o the_o judicious_a reader_n may_v observe_v but_o see_v to_o manifest_v that_o difference_n be_v one_o of_o those_o thing_n propsoe_v to_o be_v consider_v of_o i_o shall_v now_o come_v to_o say_v something_o of_o it_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n section_n viii_o how_o this_o government_n altogether_o differ_v from_o the_o oppress_v and_o persecute_v principality_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o antichristian_a assembly_n iii_o head_n iii_o whatever_o way_n we_o understand_v the_o popish_a principle_n in_o this_o matter_n prop._n 3_o whether_o of_o those_o that_o be_v most_o devote_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n dominion_n prove_v and_o the_o prince_n of_o italy_n the_o jesuit_n and_o generality_n of_o all_o those_o call_v religious_a order_n who_o hold_v that_o papa_n in_o cathedrâ_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la errare_fw-la licet_fw-la absque_fw-la concilio_n that_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o chair_n can_v err_v though_o without_o a_o council_n or_o of_o those_o that_o be_v less_o devote_v who_o plead_v this_o infallibility_n in_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n lawful_o convene_v who_o yet_o by_o the_o more_o zealous_a be_v reckon_v petty_a schismatic_n i_o say_v whatever_o way_n we_o take_v they_o all_o those_o that_o do_v profess_v themselves_o member_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n church_n principle_n
follow_v that_o that_o measure_v be_v so_o certain_a as_o the_o demonstration_n itself_o or_o that_o the_o demonstration_n will_v be_v uncertain_a without_o it_o §_o xvi_o but_o to_o make_v a_o end_n i_o shall_v add_v one_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o this_o inward_a immediate_a objective_a revelation_n which_o we_o have_v plead_v for_o all_o along_o be_v the_o only_a sure_a certain_a and_o unmoveable_a foundation_n of_o all_o christian_a faith_n which_o argument_n when_o well_o weigh_v i_o hope_v will_v have_v weight_n with_o all_o sort_n of_o christian_n and_o it_o be_v this_o that_o which_o all_o professor_n of_o christianity_n of_o whatsoever_o kind_n be_v force_v ultimate_o to_o recur_v unto_o foundation_n immediate_a revelation_n of_o all_o christian_a faith_n the_o immovable_a foundation_n when_o press_v to_o the_o last_o that_o for_o and_o because_o of_o which_o all_o other_o foundation_n be_v recommend_v and_o account_v worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o without_o which_o they_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v of_o no_o weight_n at_o all_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o only_a most_o true_a certain_a and_o unmoveable_a foundation_n of_o all_o christian_a faith_n but_o inward_a immediate_a objective_a revelation_n by_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o which_o all_o professor_n of_o christianity_n of_o whatsoever_o kind_n be_v force_v ultimate_o to_o recur_v unto_o etc._n etc._n therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o proposition_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v the_o assumption_n shall_v be_v prove_v by_o part_n why_o papist_n foundation_n their_o church_n and_o tradition_n why_o and_o first_o as_o to_o the_o papist_n they_o place_v their_o foundation_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o tradition_n if_o we_o press_v they_o to_o say_v why_o they_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n do_v their_o answer_n be_v because_o the_o church_n be_v always_o lead_v by_o the_o infallible_a spirit_n so_o here_o the_o lead_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o utmost_a foundation_n again_o if_o we_o ask_v they_o why_o we_o ought_v to_o trust_v tradition_n they_o answer_v because_o those_o tradition_n be_v deliver_v we_o by_o the_o doctor_n and_o father_n of_o the_o church_n which_o doctor_n and_o father_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n command_v the_o church_n to_o observe_v they_o here_o again_o all_o land_n in_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o for_o the_o protestant_n and_o socinian_o both_o which_o acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n why_o protestant_n and_o socinian_o make_v the_o scripture_n their_o ground_n and_o foundation_n why_o the_o one_o as_o subjective_o influence_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o use_v they_o the_o other_o as_o manage_v they_o with_o and_o by_o their_o own_o reason_n ask_v both_o or_o either_o of_o they_o why_o they_o trust_v the_o scripture_n and_o take_v they_o to_o be_v their_o rule_n their_o answer_n be_v because_o we_o have_v in_o they_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o those_o to_o who_o these_o thing_n be_v inward_o immediate_o and_o objective_o reveal_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o not_o because_o this_o or_o that_o man_n write_v they_o but_o because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dictate_v they_o scripture_n christian_n by_o name_n and_o not_o by_o nature_n hold_v revelation_n cease_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n it_o be_v strange_a then_o that_o man_n shall_v render_v that_o so_o uncertain_a and_o dangerous_a to_o follow_v upon_o which_o alone_o the_o certain_a ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o their_o own_o faith_n be_v build_v or_o that_o they_o shall_v shut_v themselves_o out_o from_o that_o holy_a fellowship_n with_o god_n which_o only_o be_v enjoy_v in_o the_o spirit_n in_o which_o we_o be_v command_v both_o to_o walk_v and_o live_v if_o any_o read_n these_o thing_n find_v themselves_o move_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o these_o scripture-argument_n to_o assent_v and_o believe_v such_o revelation_n necessary_a and_o yet_o find_v themselves_o stranger_n to_o they_o which_o as_o i_o observe_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o this_o be_v so_o much_o gainsay_v and_o contradict_v let_v they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o because_o it_o be_v cease_v to_o become_v the_o privilege_n of_o every_o christian_a that_o they_o do_v not_o feel_v it_o but_o rather_o because_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o christian_n by_o nature_n as_o by_o name_n and_o let_v such_o know_v that_o the_o secret_a light_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o reprove_v vnrighteousness_n be_v the_o small_a beginning_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n spirit_n which_o be_v first_o send_v into_o the_o world_n to_o reprove_v it_o of_o sin_n joh_n 16.8_o and_o as_o by_o forsake_v iniquity_n thou_o come_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o that_o heavenly_a voice_n in_o thy_o heart_n thou_o shall_v feel_v as_o the_o old_a man_n the_o natural_a man_n that_o savour_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n kingdom_n be_v put_v off_o with_o his_o evil_a and_o corrupt_a affection_n and_o lust_n i_o say_v thou_o shall_v feel_v the_o new_a man_n the_o spiritual_a birth_n and_o babe_n raise_v which_o have_v its_o spiritual_a sense_n and_o can_v prop._n 3_o see_v feel_v taste_n handle_v and_o smell_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o till_o then_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n spiritual_a be_v but_o as_o a_o historical_a faith_n light_n who_o want_v his_o sight_n see_v not_o the_o light_n but_o as_o the_o description_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n or_o of_o curious_a colour_n to_o a_o blind_a man_n who_o though_o of_o the_o large_a capacity_n can_v so_o well_o understand_v it_o by_o the_o most_o acute_a and_o lively_a description_n as_o a_o child_n can_v by_o see_v they_o so_o neither_o can_v the_o natural_a man_n of_o the_o large_a capacity_n by_o the_o best_a word_n even_o scripture_n word_n so_o well_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n kingdom_n as_o the_o least_o and_o weak_a child_n who_o taste_v they_o by_o have_v they_o reveal_v inward_o and_o objective_o by_o the_o spirit_n wait_v then_o for_o this_o in_o the_o small_a revelation_n of_o that_o pure_a light_n which_o first_o reveal_v thing_n more_o know_v and_o as_o thou_o become_v fit_v for_o it_o thou_o shall_v receive_v more_o and_o more_o and_o by_o a_o live_a experience_n easy_o refute_v their_o ignorance_n who_o ask_v how_o do_v thou_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v act_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o will_v appear_v to_o thou_o a_o question_v no_o less_o riculous_a than_o to_o ask_v one_o who_o eye_n be_v open_a how_o he_o know_v the_o sun_n shine_v at_o noonday_n and_o though_o this_o be_v the_o sure_a and_o certain_a way_n to_o answer_v all_o objection_n yet_o by_o what_o be_v above-written_a it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o such_o opposer_n as_o deny_v this_o doctrine_n may_v be_v shut_v by_o unquestionable_a and_o unanswerable_a reason_n proposition_n iii_o concern_v the_o scripture_n from_o these_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o the_o saint_n have_v proceed_v the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n which_o contain_v i._o a_o faithful_a historical_a account_n of_o the_o act_n of_o god_n people_n in_o divers_a age_n with_o many_o singular_a and_o remarkable_a providence_n attend_v they_o ii_o a_o prophetical_a account_n of_o several_a thing_n whereof_o some_o be_v already_o past_a and_o some_o yet_o to_o come_v iii_o a_o full_a and_o ample_a account_n of_o all_o the_o chief_a principle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n hold_v forth_o in_o divers_a precious_a declaration_n exhortation_n and_o sentence_n which_o by_o the_o move_a of_o god_n spirit_n be_v at_o several_a time_n and_o upon_o sundry_a occasion_n speak_v and_o write_v unto_o some_o church_n and_o their_o pastor_n nevertheless_o because_o they_o be_v only_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o fountain_n and_o not_o the_o fountain_n itself_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v the_o principal_a ground_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o knowledge_n nor_o yet_o the_o adequate_a primary_n rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n yet_o because_o they_o give_v a_o true_a and_o faithful_a testimony_n of_o the_o first_o foundation_n they_o be_v and_o may_v be_v esteem_v a_o secondary_a rule_n subordinate_a to_o the_o spirit_n from_o which_o they_o have_v all_o their_o excellency_n and_o certainty_n for_o as_o by_o the_o inward_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o do_v alone_o true_o know_v they_o so_o they_o testify_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o guide_n 8.14_o john_n 16.13_o rom._n 8.14_o by_o which_o the_o saint_n be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n therefore_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n the_o spirit_n be_v the_o first_o and_o principal_a leader_n see_v then_o that_o we_o do_v therefore_o receive_v and_o believe_v the_o scripture_n because_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o very_a
hard_a to_o understand_v their_o exposition_n than_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o go_v about_o to_o expound_v what_o may_v we_o say_v then_o cosider_v those_o great_a heap_n of_o commentary_n since_o in_o age_n yet_o far_o more_o corrupt_v §_o vi_o in_o this_o respect_n abovementioned_a than_o we_o have_v show_v what_o service_n and_o use_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o manage_v in_o and_o by_o the_o spirit_n be_v of_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n wherefore_o we_o do_v account_v they_o a_o secondary_a rule_n moreover_o because_o they_o be_v common_o acknowledge_v by_o all_o rule_n the_o scripture_n a_o secondary_a rule_n to_o have_v be_v write_v by_o the_o dictate_v of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o that_o the_o error_n which_o may_v be_v suppose_v by_o the_o injury_n of_o time_n to_o have_v slipt-in_a be_v not_o such_o but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o sufficient_a clear_a testimony_n leave_v to_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n we_o do_v look_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o only_a fit_a outward_a judge_n of_o controversy_n among_o christian_n and_o that_o whatever_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a unto_o their_o testimony_n may_v therefore_o just_o be_v reject_v as_o false_a and_o for_o our_o part_n we_o be_v very_o willing_a that_o all_o our_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n be_v try_v by_o they_o which_o we_o never_o refuse_v nor_o ever_o shall_v in_o all_o controversy_n with_o our_o adversary_n as_o the_o judge_n and_o test._n we_o shall_v also_o be_v very_o willing_a to_o admit_v it_o as_o a_o positive_a certain_a maxim_n that_o whatsoever_o any_o do_v pretend_v to_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n be_v account_v and_o reckon_v a_o delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o as_o we_o never_o lie_v claim_n to_o the_o spirit_n be_v leading_n that_o we_o may_v cover_v ourselves_o in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v evil_a so_o we_o know_v that_o as_o every_o evil_n contradict_v the_o scripture_n so_o it_o do_v also_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o first_o place_n from_o which_o the_o scripture_n come_v and_o who_o motion_n can_v never_o contradict_v one_o another_o though_o they_o may_v appear_v sometime_o to_o be_v contradictory_n to_o the_o blind_a eye_n of_o the_o natural_a man_n as_o paul_n and_o james_n seem_v to_o contradict_v one_o another_o thus_o far_o we_o have_v show_v both_o what_o we_o believe_v and_o what_o we_o believe_v not_o concern_v the_o holy_a scripture_n hope_v we_o have_v give_v they_o their_o due_a place_n but_o since_o they_o that_o will_v needs_o have_v they_o to_o be_v the_o only_a certain_a and_o principal_a rule_n want_v not_o some_o show_n of_o argument_n even_o from_o the_o scripture_n itself_o though_o it_o no_o where_n call_v itself_o so_o by_o which_o they_o labour_v to_o prove_v their_o doctrine_n i_o shall_v brief_o lay_v they_o down_o by_o way_n of_o objection_n and_o answer_v they_o before_o i_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o matter_n object_n 1_o §_o vii_o their_o first_o objection_n be_v usual_o draw_v from_o isaiah_n 8.20_o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o now_o this_o law_n testimony_n and_o word_n they_o plead_v to_o be_v the_o scripture_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o that_o be_v to_o beg_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n and_o answ._n 1_o remain_v yet_o vnprove_v nor_o do_v i_o know_v for_o what_o reason_n we_o may_v not_o safe_o affirm_v this_o law_n and_o word_n to_o be_v inward_a but_o suppose_v it_o be_v outward_a it_o prove_v not_o the_o case_n at_o all_o for_o they_o neither_o make_v it_o against_o we_o for_o it_o may_v be_v confess_v without_o any_o prejudice_n to_o our_o cause_n that_o the_o outward_a law_n be_v more_o particular_o to_o the_o jew_n a_o rule_n and_o more_o principal_o than_o to_o we_o see_v their_o law_n be_v outward_a and_o literal_a but_o we_o under_o the_o new_a covenant_n as_o have_v be_v already_o say_v be_v express_o affirm_v to_o be_v inward_a and_o spiritual_a what_o to_o try_v all_o thing_n by_o what_o so_o that_o this_o scripture_n be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v against_o we_o that_o it_o make_v for_o we_o for_o if_o the_o jew_n be_v direct_v to_o try_v all_o thing_n by_o their_o law_n which_o be_v without_o they_o write_v in_o table_n of_o stone_n then_o if_o we_o will_v have_v this_o advice_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o reach_v we_o we_o must_v make_v it_o hold_v parallel_n to_o that_o dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o we_o be_v under_o so_o that_o we_o be_v to_o try_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o first_o place_n by_o that_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v preach_v unto_o we_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v be_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o by_o that_o law_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v also_o express_o be_v write_v and_o place_v in_o the_o mind_n last_o if_o we_o look_v to_o this_o place_n according_a to_o the_o greek_a interpretation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n our_o adversary_n shall_v have_v nothing_o from_o thence_o to_o carp_n yea_o it_o will_v favour_v we_o much_o for_o there_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o law_n be_v give_v we_o for_o a_o help_n which_o very_o well_o agree_v with_o what_o be_v above_o assert_v their_o second_o objection_n be_v from_o joh._n 5.39_o search_v the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n object_n 2_o here_o say_v they_o we_o be_v command_v by_o christ_n himself_o to_o search_v the_o scripture_n answ._n 1_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v search_v we_o do_v not_o at_o all_o deny_v but_o be_v very_o willing_a to_o be_v try_v by_o they_o as_o have_v be_v above_o declare_v but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o be_v the_o only_a and_o principal_a rule_n which_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o prove_v that_o it_o prove_v the_o contrary_a for_o christ_n check_v they_o here_o for_o too_o high_a a_o esteem_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o neglect_v of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o they_o and_o to_o who_o they_o bear_v witness_n as_o the_o follow_a word_n declare_v for_o in_o they_o you_o think_v you_o have_v eternal_a life_n etc._n search_v the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o be_v they_o which_o testify_v of_o i_o and_o you_o will_v not_o come_v unto_o i_o that_o you_o may_v have_v life_n this_o show_v that_o while_o they_o think_v they_o have_v eternal_a life_n in_o the_o scripture_n they_o neglect_v to_o come_v unto_o christ_n to_o have_v life_n of_o which_o the_o scripture_n bear_v witness_n this_o answer_n well_o to_o our_o purpose_n since_o our_o adversary_n now_o do_v also_o exalt_v the_o scripture_n and_o think_v to_o have_v life_n in_o they_o which_o be_v no_o more_o than_o to_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o only_a principal_a rule_n and_o way_n to_o life_n and_o yet_o refuse_v to_o come_v unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o which_o they_o testify_v even_o the_o inward_a spiritual_a law_n which_o can_v give_v they_o life_n so_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o people_n ignorance_n and_o unbelief_n be_v not_o their_o want_n of_o respect_n to_o the_o scripture_n which_o though_o they_o know_v and_o have_v a_o high_a esteem_n of_o yet_o christ_n testify_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n that_o they_o have_v neither_o see_v the_o father_n nor_o hear_v his_o voice_n at_o any_o time_n neither_o have_v his_o word_n abide_v in_o they_o which_o have_v they_o then_o have_v than_o they_o have_v believe_v in_o the_o son_n moreover_o that_o place_n may_v be_v take_v in_o the_o indicative_a mood_n you_o search_v the_o scripture_n which_o interpretation_n the_o greek_a word_n will_v bear_v and_o so_o answ._n 2_o pasor_n translate_v it_o which_o by_o the_o reproof_n follow_v seem_v also_o to_o be_v the_o more_o genuine_a interpretation_n as_o cyrillus_n long_o ago_o have_v observe_v §_o viii_o their_o three_o objection_n be_v from_o these_o word_n act_n 17.11_o these_o be_v more_o noble_a than_o those_o in_o thessalonica_n in_o that_o they_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o all_o readiness_n of_o mind_n and_o search_v the_o scripture_n daily_o whether_o those_o thing_n be_v so_o here_o say_v they_o the_o beroean_n be_v commend_v for_o search_v the_o scripture_n object_n 3_o and_o make_v they_o the_o rule_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o scripture_n either_o be_v the_o principal_a or_o only_a rule_n answ._n 1_o will_v not_o at_o all_o from_o this_o follow_v neither_o will_v their_o search_v the_o scripture_n or_o be_v commend_v for_o it_o infer_v any_o such_o thing_n for_o we_o recommend_v and_o approve_v the_o use_n of_o they_o in_o that_o respect_n as_o much_o as_o any_o yet_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o we_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v the_o principal_a and_o only_a rule_n second_o it_o be_v to_o
adam_n sin_n be_v confess_v but_o that_o that_o infer_v necessary_o a_o gild_n in_o all_o other_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o be_v deny_v for_o though_o the_o whole_a outward_a creation_n suffer_v a_o decay_n by_o adam_n fall_n answer_v death_n the_o wage_n of_o sin_n answer_v which_o groan_v under_o vanity_n according_a to_o which_o it_o be_v say_v in_o job_n that_o the_o heaven_n be_v not_o clean_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o from_o thence_o follow_v that_o the_o herb_n earth_n and_o tree_n be_v sinner_n next_o death_n though_o a_o consequent_a of_o the_o fall_v incident_a to_o man_n earthly_a nature_n be_v not_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o saint_n but_o rather_o a_o sleep_n by_o which_o they_o pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v troublesome_a and_o painful_a to_o they_o as_o all_o real_a punishment_n for_o sin_n be_v that_o prop._n 5_o 6_o the_o apostle_n count_v it_o gain_v to_o i_o say_v he_o to_o die_v be_v gain_n phil._n 1.21_o some_o be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o make_v a_o objection_n further_o say_v object_n object_n that_o if_o adam_n sin_n be_v not_o impute_v to_o those_o who_o actual_o have_v not_o sin_v than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o all_o infant_n be_v save_v but_o we_o be_v willing_a answ._n that_o this_o suppose_a absurdity_n shall_v be_v the_o consequence_n of_o our_o doctrine_n rather_o than_o that_o which_o it_o seem_v our_o adversary_n reckon_v not_o absurd_a though_o the_o undoubted_a and_o unavoidable_a consequence_n of_o they_o viz._n that_o many_o infant_n eternal_o perish_v not_o for_o any_o sin_n of_o their_o own_o but_o only_o for_o adam_n be_v iniquity_n where_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o let_v the_o controversy●ist_n ●ist_z commend_v both_o to_o the_o illuminate_v understanding_n of_o the_o christian_a reader_n this_o error_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v both_o deny_v and_o refute_v by_o zwinglius_fw-la that_o eminent_a founder_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o switzerland_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la for_o which_o he_o be_v anathematise_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o five_o session_n we_o shall_v only_o add_v this_o information_n that_o we_o confess_v then_o that_o a_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v transmit_v to_o all_o man_n from_o adam_n although_o impute_v to_o none_o scripture-phrase_n original_a sin_n no_o scripture-phrase_n until_o by_o sin_v they_o actual_o join_v with_o it_o in_o which_o seed_n he_o give_v occasion_n to_o all_o to_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v the_o origin_n of_o all_o evil_a action_n and_o thought_n in_o man_n heart_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v in_o roman_n 5._o i_o e._n in_o which_o death_n all_o have_v sin_v for_o this_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v frequent_o call_v death_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o body_n of_o death_n see_v indeed_o it_o be_v a_o death_n to_o the_o life_n of_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n therefore_o its_o seed_n and_o its_o product_n be_v call_v the_o old_a man_n the_o old_a adam_n in_o which_o all_o sin_n be_v for_o which_o cause_n we_o use_v this_o name_n to_o express_v this_o sin_n and_o not_o that_o of_o original_a sin_n of_o which_o phrase_n the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n and_o under_o which_o invent_v and_o vnscriptural_a barbarism_n this_o notion_n of_o impute_v sin_n to_o infant_n take_v place_n among_o christian_n proposition_n v._n &_o vi_o concern_v the_o universal_a redemption_n by_o christ_n and_o also_o the_o save_v and_o spiritual_a light_n wherewith_o every_o man_n be_v enlighten_v proposition_n v._n god_n out_o of_o his_o infinite_a love_n 11._o ezech._n 18.32_o and_o 33_o 11._o who_o delight_v not_o in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o that_o all_o shall_v live_v and_o be_v save_v have_v so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o only_a son_n a_o light_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v joh._n 3.16_o who_o enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n joh._n 1.9_o and_o make_v manifest_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v reprovable_a eph._n 5.13_o and_o teach_v all_o temperance_n righteousness_n and_o godliness_n and_o this_o light_n lighten_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o in_o a_o day_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o reprove_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o individual_n and_o will_v work_v out_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o if_o not_o resist_v nor_o be_v it_o less_o universal_a than_o the_o seed_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o purchase_n of_o his_o death_n who_o taste_v death_n for_o every_o man._n for_o as_o in_o adam_n all_o die_n even_o so_o in_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a 1_o cor._n 15.22_o proposition_n vi._n according_a to_o which_o principle_n or_o hypothesis_n all_o the_o objection_n against_o the_o universality_n of_o christ_n death_n be_v easy_o solve_v neither_o be_v it_o needful_a to_o recur_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n and_o those_o other_o miraculous_a mean_n which_o they_o say_v god_n use_v to_o manifest_v the_o doctrine_n and_o history_n of_o christ_n passion_n unto_o such_o who_o live_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o outward_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v unknown_a have_v well_o improve_v the_o first_o and_o common_a grace_n for_o as_o hence_o it_o well_o follow_v that_o some_o of_o the_o old_a philosopher_n may_v have_v be_v save_v so_o also_o may_v some_o who_o by_o providence_n be_v cast_v into_o those_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n be_v want_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n if_o they_o receive_v and_o resist_v not_o that_o grace_n 12.7_o 1_o cor._n 12.7_o a_o manifestation_n whereof_o be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o this_o most_o certain_a doctrine_n be_v then_o receive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o evangelical_n and_o saving_n light_n and_o grace_n in_o all_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o love_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n both_o in_o the_o death_n of_o his_o belove_a son_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o light_n in_o the_o heart_n be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v against_o all_o the_o objection_n of_o such_o as_o deny_v it_o therefore_o christ_n have_v taste_v death_n for_o every_o man_n 2.9_o hebr._n 2.9_o not_o only_o for_o all_o kind_n of_o man_n as_o some_o vain_o talk_v but_o for_o every_o man_n of_o all_o kind_n the_o benefit_n of_o who_o offer_v be_v not_o only_o extend_v to_o such_o who_o have_v the_o distinct_a outward_a knowledge_n of_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n as_o the_o same_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o even_o unto_o those_o who_o be_v necessary_o exclude_v from_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o knowledge_n by_o some_o inevitable_a accident_n which_o knowledge_n we_o willing_o confess_v to_o be_v very_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a but_o not_o absolute_o needful_a unto_o such_o from_o who_o god_n himself_o have_v withhold_v it_o yet_o they_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o death_n though_o ignorant_a of_o the_o history_n if_o they_o suffer_v his_o seed_n and_o light_n enlighten_v their_o heart_n to_o take_v place_n in_o which_o light_a communion_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v enjoy_v so_o as_o of_o wicked_a man_n to_o become_v holy_a and_o lover_n of_o that_o power_n by_o who_o inward_a and_o secret_a touch_v they_o feel_v themselves_o turn_v from_o the_o evil_a to_o the_o good_a and_o learn_v to_o do_v to_o other_o as_o they_o will_v be_v do_v by_o in_o which_o christ_n himself_o affirm_v all_o to_o be_v include_v as_o they_o have_v then_o false_o and_o erroneous_o teach_v who_o have_v deny_v christ_n to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o man_n so_o neither_o have_v they_o sufficient_o teach_v the_o truth_n who_o affirm_v he_o to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o have_v add_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o the_o outward_a knowledge_n thereof_o in_o order_n to_o obtain_v its_o save_v effect_n among_o who_o the_o remonstrant_n of_o holland_n have_v be_v chief_o want_v and_o many_o other_o assertor_n of_o universal_a redemption_n in_o that_o they_o have_v not_o place_v the_o extent_n of_o his_o salvation_n in_o that_o divine_a and_o evangelical_n principle_n of_o light_n and_o life_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n which_o be_v excellent_o and_o evident_o hold_v forth_o in_o these_o scripture_n gen._n 6.3_o deut._n 30.14_o john_n 1.7_o 8_o 9_o 16._o rom._n 10.8_o tit._n 2.11_o hitherto_o we_o have_v consider_v man_n be_v fall_v lose_v corrupt_a and_o degenerate_v condition_n now_o be_v it_o fit_a to_o inquire_v how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v he_o may_v come_v to_o be_v free_v out_o of_o this_o miserable_a
so_o i_o say_v it_o be_v after_o the_o reject_v of_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n that_o the_o judgement_n of_o obduration_n be_v inflict_v upon_o man_n and_o woman_n as_o christ_n pronounce_v it_o upon_o the_o jew_n out_o of_o isa._n 6.9_o which_o all_o the_o four_o evangelist_n make_v mention_n of_o matth._n 13.14_o mark_v 4.12_o luke_n 8.10_o john_n 12.40_o and_o last_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n paul_n after_o he_o have_v make_v offer_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o jew_n at_o rome_n pronounce_v the_o same_o act_v 28.26_o after_o that_o some_o believe_v not_o well_o speak_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o isaiah_n the_o prophet_n unto_o our_o father_n say_v go_v unto_o this_o people_n and_o say_v hear_v you_o shall_v hear_v and_o shall_v not_o understand_v and_o see_v you_o shall_v see_v and_o shall_v not_o perceive_v for_o the_o heart_n of_o this_o people_n be_v wax_v gross_a and_o their_o ear_n be_v dull_a of_o hear_v and_o their_o eye_n have_v they_o close_v lest_o they_o shall_v see_v with_o their_o eye_n and_o hear_v with_o their_o ear_n and_o understand_v with_o their_o heart_n and_o shall_v be_v convert_v and_o i_o shall_v heal_v they_o so_o it_o appear_v that_o god_n will_v have_v they_o to_o see_v but_o they_o close_v their_o eye_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v just_o harden_v alex._n cyrill_n alex._n of_o this_o matter_n cyrillus_n alexandrinus_n upon_o john_n l._n 6._o c._n 21._o speak_v well_o answer_v to_o this_o objection_n but_o some_o may_v say_v if_o christ_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o those_o that_o see_v may_v be_v blind_v their_o blindness_n be_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v unto_o they_o but_o it_o rather_o seem_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o blindness_n who_o say_v he_o be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o those_o that_o see_v may_v be_v blind_v but_o say_v he_o they_o speak_v not_o rational_o who_o object_n these_o thing_n unto_o god_n and_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o call_v he_o the_o author_n of_o evil_a for_o as_o the_o sensible_a sun_n be_v carry_v upon_o our_o horizon_n that_o it_o may_v communicate_v the_o gift_n of_o its_o clearness_n unto_o all_o and_o make_v its_o light_n shine_v upon_o all_o but_o if_o any_o one_o close_a his_o eyelid_n eye_n the_o cause_n of_o man_n remain_v in_o darkness_n the_o close_v his_o eye_n or_o willing_o turn_v himself_o from_o the_o sun_n refuse_v the_o benefit_n of_o its_o light_n he_o want_v its_o illumination_n and_o remain_v in_o darkness_n not_o through_o defect_n of_o the_o sun_n but_o through_o his_o own_o fault_n so_o that_o the_o true_a sun_n who_o come_v to_o inlighten_v those_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o region_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n visit_v the_o earth_n for_o this_o cause_n that_o he_o may_v communicate_v unto_o all_o the_o gift_n of_o knowledge_n and_o grace_n and_o illuminate_v the_o inward_a eye_n of_o all_o by_o a_o peculiar_a splendour_n but_o many_o reject_v this_o gift_n of_o the_o heavenly_a light_n free_o give_v to_o they_o and_o have_v close_v the_o eye_n of_o their_o mind_n lest_o so_o excellent_a a_o illumination_n or_o irradiation_n of_o the_o eternal_a light_n shall_v shine_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v not_o then_o through_o defect_n of_o the_o true_a sun_n but_o only_o through_o their_o own_o iniquity_n and_o hardness_n for_o as_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v wisdom_n 2._o their_o wickedness_n have_v blind_v they_o from_o all_o which_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o there_o be_v a_o day_n day_n the_o obstinate_a jew_n have_v a_o day_n wherein_o the_o obstinate_a jew_n may_v have_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o their_o peace_n which_o because_o they_o reject_v it_o be_v hide_v from_o their_o eye_n if_o there_o be_v a_o time_n wherein_o christ_n will_v have_v gather_v they_o who_o because_o they_o refuse_v can_v not_o be_v gather_v then_o such_o as_o may_v have_v be_v save_v do_v actual_o perish_v that_o slight_v the_o day_n of_o god_n visitation_n towards_o they_o wherein_o they_o may_v have_v be_v convert_v and_o save_v but_o the_o first_o be_v true_a therefore_o also_o the_o last_o §_o xxi_o second_o that_o which_o come_v in_o the_o second_o place_n to_o be_v prove_v prop._n two_o be_v prove_v that_o whereby_o god_n offer_v to_o work_v this_o salvation_n during_o the_o day_n of_o every_o man_n visitation_n and_o that_o be_v that_o he_o have_v give_v to_o every_o man_n a_o measure_n of_o save_v sufficient_a and_o supernatural_a light_n and_o grace_n this_o i_o shall_v do_v by_o god_n assistance_n by_o some_o plain_a and_o clear_a testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n first_o from_o that_o of_o john_n 1.9_o that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n which_o inlightn_v proof_n i_o every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n etc._n the_o light_n enlighten_v every_o man_n etc._n etc._n this_o place_n do_v so_o clear_o favour_v we_o that_o by_o some_o it_o be_v call_v the_o quaker_n text_n for_o it_o do_v evident_o demonstrate_v our_o assertion_n so_o that_o it_o scarce_o need_v either_o consequence_n or_o deduction_n see_v itself_o be_v as_o a_o consequence_n of_o two_o proposition_n assert_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n from_o which_o it_o follow_v as_o a_o conclusion_n in_o the_o very_a term_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o first_o of_o these_o proposition_n be_v the_o life_n that_o be_v in_o he_o be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n the_o second_o the_o light_n shine_v in_o the_o darkness_n and_o from_o these_o two_o he_o infer_v and_o he_o be_v the_o true_a light_n that_o light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n from_o whence_o i_o do_v in_o short_a observe_v that_o this_o divine_a apostle_n call_v obseru._n 1_o christ_n the_o light_n of_o man_n and_o give_v we_o this_o as_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a property_n at_o least_o considerable_o and_o especial_o to_o be_v observe_v by_o we_o see_v hereby_o as_o he_o be_v the_o light_n and_o as_o we_o walk_v with_o he_o in_o that_o light_n which_o he_o communicate_v to_o we_o we_o come_v to_o have_v fellowship_n and_o communion_n with_o he_o as_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v elsewhere_o 1_o joh._n 1.7_o second_o that_o this_o light_n shine_v in_o darkness_n though_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o three_o that_o this_o true_a light_n inlightn_v every_o man_n man_n not_o but_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o man_n but_o every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n where_o the_o apostle_n be_v direct_v by_o god_n spirit_n have_v careful_o avoid_v their_o captiousness_n that_o will_v have_v restrict_v this_o to_o any_o certain_a number_n where_o every_o one_o be_v there_o be_v none_o exclude_v next_o shall_v they_o be_v so_o obstinate_a as_o sometime_o they_o be_v as_o to_o say_v that_o this_o every_o man_n be_v only_a every_o one_o of_o the_o elect_n these_o word_n follow_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n will_v obviate_v that_o objection_n so_o that_o it_o be_v plain_a there_o come_v no_o man_n into_o the_o world_n who_o christ_n have_v not_o enlighten_v in_o some_o measure_n and_o in_o who_o dark_a heart_n this_o light_n do_v not_o shine_v though_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o yet_o it_o shine_v there_o and_o the_o nature_n thereof_o be_v to_o dispel_v the_o darkness_n faith_n the_o light_n dispel_v darkness_n beget_v faith_n where_o man_n shut_v not_o their_o eye_n upon_o it_o now_o for_o what_o end_v this_o light_n be_v give_v be_v express_v vers_fw-la 7._o where_o john_n be_v say_v to_o come_v for_o a_o witness_n to_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o light_n that_o all_o man_n through_o it_o may_v believe_v to_o wit_n through_o the_o light_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o do_v very_o well_o agree_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o be_v the_o near_a antecedent_n though_o most_o translator_n have_v to_o make_v it_o suit_n with_o their_o own_o doctrine_n make_v it_o relate_v to_o john_n as_o if_o all_o man_n be_v to_o believe_v through_o john_n for_o which_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o direct_o in_o the_o text_n so_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o very_a strain_n of_o the_o context_n for_o see_v christ_n have_v light_v every_o man_n with_o this_o light_n be_v it_o not_o that_o they_o may_v come_v to_o believe_v through_o it_o all_o can_v not_o believe_v through_o john_n because_o all_o man_n can_v not_o know_v of_o john_n testimony_n whereas_o every_o man_n be_v light_v by_o this_o may_v come_v therethrough_a to_o believe_v john_n shine_v not_o in_o the_o darkness_n but_o this_o light_n shine_v in_o the_o darkness_n that_o have_v dispel_v the_o darkness_n it_o may_v produce_v and_o beget_v faith_n and_o last_o we_o must_v believe_v through_o that_o and_o become_v believer_n through_o that_o by_o walk_v in_o which_o fellowship_n with_o god_n be_v know_v
then_o make_v just_a he_o add_v but_o let_v they_o have_v a_o care_n lest_o by_o too_o great_a and_o empty_a subtlety_n unknown_a both_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o father_n they_o lessen_v and_o diminish_v the_o weight_n and_o dignity_n of_o so_o great_a and_o divine_a a_o benefit_n so_o much_o celebrate_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o wit_n justification_n of_o the_o wicked_a for_o if_o to_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o justification_n of_o the_o ungodly_a do_v not_o at_o all_o belong_v his_o justification_n so_o to_o speak_v i._n e._n his_o be_v make_v righteous_a then_o in_o the_o justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n although_o he_o be_v justify_v yet_o the_o stain_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o take_v away_o but_o remain_v the_o same_o in_o his_o soul_n as_o before_o justification_n and_o so_o notwithstanding_o the_o benefit_n of_o justification_n he_o remain_v as_o before_o unjust_a and_o a_o sinner_n and_o nothing_o be_v take_v away_o but_o the_o gild_n and_o obligation_n to_o pain_n and_o the_o offence_n and_o enmity_n of_o god_n through_o non-imputation_n but_o both_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n do_v affirm_v that_o in_o the_o justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n their_o sin_n be_v not_o only_o remit_v forgive_v cover_v not_o impute_v but_o also_o take_v away_o blot_v out_o cleanse_v wash_v purge_v and_o very_o far_o remove_v from_o we_o as_o appear_v from_o many_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o same_o forbes_n show_v we_o at_o length_n in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n that_o this_o be_v the_o confess_v judgement_n of_o the_o father_n out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o those_o who_o hold_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n some_o whereof_o out_o of_o he_o i_o shall_v note_v 15._o calvin_n inst._n l._n 3._o c._n 11._o §_o 15._o as_o first_o calvin_n say_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o augustine_n or_o at_o lest_o his_o manner_n of_o speak_v be_v not_o throughout_o to_o be_v receive_v who_o although_o he_o take_v from_o man_n all_o praise_n of_o righteousness_n and_o ascribe_v all_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o refer_v grace_n to_o sanctification_n by_o which_o we_o be_v regenerate_v through_o the_o spirit_n unto_o newness_n of_o life_n chemnitius_n say_v that_o they_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o father_n take_v the_o word_n justify_v for_o renew_n 129._o chemnitius_n in_o exam._n council_n trid._n de_fw-fr just._n p._n 129._o by_o which_o work_v of_o righteousness_n be_v wrooght_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o p._n 130._o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o father_n indeed_o often_o use_v the_o word_n justify_v in_o this_o signification_n to_o wit_n of_o make_v just_a zanchius_n say_v that_o the_o father_n and_o chief_o augustine_n interpret_v the_o word_n justify_v according_o to_o this_o signification_n 1.5_o zanchius_n in_o cap._n 2._o ad_fw-la eph._n ver_fw-la 4._o loc_fw-la de_fw-fr just._n thes._n 1.5_o to_o wit_n of_o make_v just_o so_o that_o according_a to_o they_o to_o be_v justify_v be_v no_o other_o than_o of_o unjust_a to_o be_v make_v just_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o christ._n he_o mention_v more_o but_o this_o may_v suffice_v to_o our_o purpose_n assert_v i_o §_o viii_o have_v thus_o sufficent_o prove_v that_o by_o justification_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v a_o real_o be_v make_v righteous_a i_o do_v bold_o affirm_v and_o that_o not_o only_o from_o a_o notional_a knowledge_n justification_n christ_n reveal_v and_o form_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o man_n be_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o man_n justification_n but_o from_o a_o real_a inward_a experimental_a feel_v of_o the_o thing_n that_o the_o immediate_a near_o or_o formal_a cause_n if_o we_o must_v in_o condescendence_n to_o some_o use_n this_o word_n of_o a_o man_n justification_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o soul_n change_v alter_v and_o renew_v the_o mind_n by_o who_o even_o the_o author_n of_o this_o inward_a work_n thus_o form_v and_o reveal_v we_o be_v true_o justify_v and_o accept_v proof_n i_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v as_o we_o be_v thus_o cover_v and_o clothe_v with_o he_o in_o who_o the_o father_n be_v always_o well-pleased_n that_o we_o may_v draw_v near_o to_o god_n and_o stand_v with_o confidence_n before_o his_o throne_n be_v purge_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n inward_o pour_v into_o our_o soul_n and_o clothe_v with_o his_o life_n and_o righteousness_n therein_o reveal_v and_o this_o be_v that_o order_n and_o method_n of_o salvation_n hold_v forth_o by_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o divine_a say_n rom._n 5.10_o for_o if_o when_o we_o be_v enemy_n we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n much_o more_o be_v reconcile_v we_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o his_o life_n for_o the_o apostle_n first_o hold_v forth_o the_o reconciliation_n wrought_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n wherein_o god_n be_v near_o to_o receive_v and_o redeem_v man_n hold_v forth_o his_o salvation_n and_o justification_n to_o be_v by_o the_o life_n of_o jesus_n now_o that_o this_o life_n be_v a_o inward_a spiritual_a thing_n reveal_v in_o the_o soul_n whereby_o it_o be_v renew_v and_o bring_v forth_o out_o of_o death_n where_o it_o natural_o have_v be_v by_o the_o fall_n and_o so_o quicken_v and_o make_v alive_a unto_o god_n the_o same_o apostle_n show_v eph._n 2.5_o even_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o trespass_n he_o have_v quicken_v we_o together_o in_o christ_n by_o who_o grace_n you_o be_v save_v and_o have_v raise_v we_o up_o together_o now_o this_o none_o will_v deny_v to_o be_v the_o inward_a work_n of_o renovation_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n give_v that_o reason_n of_o their_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o inward_a virtue_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o soul_n but_o of_o this_o place_n more_o hereafter_o of_o the_o revelation_n of_o this_o inward_a life_n the_o apostle_n also_o speak_v 2_o cor._n 4.10_o that_o the_o life_n also_o of_o jesus_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a in_o our_o body_n and_o v._o 11._o that_o the_o life_n also_o of_o jesus_n may_v be_v make_v manifest_a in_o our_o mortal_a flesh_n now_o this_o inward_a life_n of_o jesus_n be_v that_o whereby_o as_o be_v before_o observe_v he_o say_v we_o be_v save_v second_o that_o it_o be_v by_o this_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o new_a proof_n two_o creation_n in_o we_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v do_v evident_o appear_v from_o that_o excellent_a say_v of_o the_o apostle_n include_v in_o the_o proposition_n itself_o tit._n 3.5_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o have_v save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n now_o that_o whereby_o we_o be_v save_v that_o we_o be_v also_o no_o doubt_n justify_v by_o which_o word_n be_v in_o this_o respect_n synonymous_n regeneration_n the_o immediate_a cause_n of_o justification_n be_v the_o inward_a work_n of_o regeneration_n here_o the_o apostle_n clear_o ascribe_v the_o immediate_a cause_n of_o justification_n to_o this_o inward_a work_n of_o regeneration_n which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n reveal_v in_o the_o soul_n as_o be_v that_o which_o formal_o state_v we_o in_o a_o capacity_n of_o be_v reconcile_v with_o god_n the_o wash_v or_o regeneration_n be_v that_o inward_a power_n and_o virtue_n whereby_o the_o soul_n be_v cleanse_v and_o clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o to_o be_v make_v fit_a to_o appear_v before_o god_n three_o this_o doctrine_n be_v manifest_a from_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o examine_v your_o own_o proof_n iii_o self_n whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n prove_v your_o own_o self_n know_v you_o not_o your_o own_o self_n how_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n first_o it_o appear_v here_o how_o earnest_a the_o apostle_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v know_v christ_n in_o they_o so_o that_o he_o press_v this_o exhortation_n upon_o they_o and_o inculcate_n it_o three_o time_n second_o revelation_n the_o cause_n of_o reprobation_n be_v christ_n not_o know_v by_o inward_a revelation_n he_o make_v the_o cause_n of_o reprobation_n or_o not-justification_n the_o want_n of_o christ_n thus_o reveal_v and_o know_v in_o the_o soul_n whereby_o it_o necessary_o follow_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o contrary_n where_o the_o parity_n be_v alike_o as_o in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o where_o christ_n be_v inward_o know_v there_o the_o person_n subject_v to_o he_o be_v approve_v and_o justify_v for_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o more_o plain_a than_o this_o that_o if_o we_o must_v know_v christ_n in_o we_o except_o we_o be_v reprobate_n or_o vnjustify_v person_n that_o if_o we_o do_v know_v he_o in_o we_o we_o be_v not_o reprobate_n and_o consequent_o justify_v once_o like_o unto_o
give_v to_o some_o saint_n in_o this_o life_n not_o by_o the_o power_n of_o man_n strength_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o do_v well_o to_o think_v so_o confident_o and_o hope_v it_o faithful_o possible_a that_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a for_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a that_o this_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o father_n appear_v from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o aszansik_n council_n canon_n last_o we_o believe_v also_o this_o according_a to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n that_o all_o that_o be_v baptize_v through_o grace_n by_o baptism_n receive_v and_o christ_n help_v they_o and_o coworking_a may_v and_o aught_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o belong_v to_o salvation_n if_o they_o will_v faithful_o labour_v conclusion_n conclusion_n §_o xi_o bless_a then_o be_v they_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o be_v both_o able_a and_o willing_a to_o deliver_v as_o many_o as_o come_v to_o he_o through_o true_a repentance_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o do_v not_o resolve_v as_o these_o man_n do_v to_o be_v the_o devil_n servant_n all_o their_o life_n time_n 3.14_o phil._n 3.14_o but_o daily_o go_v on_o forsake_v unrighteousness_n and_o forget_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v behind_o overcome_a press_v forward_o to_o the_o mark_n the_o prize_n a_o overcome_a press_v forward_o towards_o the_o mark_n for_o the_o prize_n of_o the_o high_a call_v of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n such_o shall_v not_o find_v their_o faith_n and_o confidence_n to_o be_v in_o vain_a but_o in_o due_a time_n shall_v be_v make_v conqueror_n through_o he_o in_o who_o they_o have_v believe_v and_o so_o overcome_v shall_v be_v establish_v as_o pillar_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n so_o as_o they_o shall_v go_v no_o more_o out_o rev._n 3.12_o proposition_n ix_o concern_v perseverance_n and_o the_o possibility_n of_o fall_v from_o grace_n although_o this_o gift_n and_o inward_a grace_n of_o god_n be_v sufficient_a to_o work_v out_o salvation_n yet_o in_o those_o in_o who_o it_o be_v resist_v it_o both_o may_v and_o do_v become_v their_o condemnation_n moreover_o they_o in_o who_o heart_n it_o have_v wrought_v in_o part_n to_o purify_v and_o sanctify_v they_o in_o order_n to_o their_o further_a perfection_n may_v by_o disobedience_n fall_v from_o it_o disobedience_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v lose_v by_o disobedience_n turn_v it_o to_o wantonness_n 1_o tim._n 1.19_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o faith_n and_o after_o have_v taste_v the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n again_o fall_v away_o hebr._n 6.4_o 5_o 6_o yet_o such_o a_o increase_n and_o stability_n in_o the_o truth_n may_v in_o this_o life_n be_v attain_v from_o which_o there_o can_v be_v a_o total_a apostasy_n §_o i._o the_o first_o sentence_n of_o this_o proposition_n have_v already_o be_v treat_v of_o in_o the_o five_o and_o six_o proposition_n where_o it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o that_o light_n which_o be_v give_v for_o life_n and_o salvation_n become_v the_o condemnation_n of_o those_o that_o refuse_v it_o and_o therefore_o be_v already_o prove_v in_o those_o place_n where_o i_o do_v demonstrate_v the_o possibility_n of_o man_n resist_v the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v so_o apparent_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v by_o such_o as_o will_v but_o serious_o consider_v these_o testimony_n prov._n 1.24_o 25_o &_o 26._o john_n 3.18_o 19_o 2_o thess._n 2.11_o 12._o act_n 7.51_o &_o 13.46_o rom._n 1.18_o as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o it_o that_o they_o in_o who_o this_o grace_n may_v have_v wrought_v in_o a_o good_a measure_n in_o order_n to_o purify_v and_o sanctify_v they_o tend_v to_o their_o further_a perfection_n may_v afterward_o through_o disobedience_n fall_v away_o etc._n etc._n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n include_v in_o the_o proposition_n itself_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v it_o to_o man_n of_o unbiased_a judgement_n but_o because_o as_o to_o this_o part_n our_o cause_n be_v common_a with_o many_o other_o protestant_n i_o shall_v be_v the_o more_o brief_a in_o it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o my_o design_n to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v do_v already_o neither_o do_v i_o covet_v to_o appear_v know_v by_o writing_n much_o but_o simple_o purpose_n to_o present_v to_o the_o world_n a_o faithful_a account_n of_o our_o principle_n and_o brief_o to_o let_v they_o understand_v what_o we_o have_v to_o say_v for_o ourselves_o evince_v a_o fall_v from_o grace_n by_o disobedience_n evince_v §_o ii_o from_o these_o scripture_n than_o include_v in_o the_o proposition_n not_o to_o mention_v many_o more_o which_o may_v be_v urge_v i_o argue_v thus_o if_o man_n may_v turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n than_o they_o must_v once_o arg._n 1_o have_v have_v it_o but_o the_o first_o be_v true_a therefore_o also_o the_o second_o if_o man_n may_v make_v shipwreck_n of_o faith_n they_o must_v once_o have_v have_v it_o neither_o arg._n 2_o can_v they_o ever_o have_v have_v true_a faith_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o the_o first_o be_v true_a therefore_o also_o the_o last_o if_o man_n may_v have_v taste_v of_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n arg._n 3_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o afterward_o fall_v away_o they_o must_v needs_o have_v know_v in_o measure_n the_o operation_n of_o god_n save_v grace_n and_o spirit_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v taste_v the_o heavenly_a gift_n nor_o yet_o partake_v of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n but_o the_o first_o be_v true_a therefore_o also_o the_o last_o second_o see_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n be_v build_v upon_o this_o false_a hypothesis_n that_o grace_n be_v not_o give_v for_o salvation_n to_o any_o but_o to_o a_o certain_a elect_a number_n which_o can_v lose_v it_o exhortation_n the_o doctrine_n of_o election_n and_o reprobation_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o preach_v and_o daily_a exhortation_n and_o that_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n by_o a_o absolute_a decree_n be_v debar_v from_o grace_n and_o salvation_n that_o be_v destroy_v this_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n now_o as_o that_o doctrine_n of_o they_o be_v whole_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o daily_a practice_n of_o those_o that_o preach_v it_o in_o that_o they_o exhort_v people_n to_o believe_v and_o be_v save_v while_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n if_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o reprobation_n it_o be_v simple_o impossible_a for_o they_o so_o to_o do_v and_o if_o to_o the_o decree_n of_o election_n it_o be_v needless_a see_v it_o be_v as_o impossible_a to_o they_o to_o miss_v of_o it_o as_o have_v be_v before_o demonstrate_v so_o also_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o perseverance_n their_o practice_n and_o principle_n be_v no_o less_o inconsistent_a and_o contradictory_n for_o while_o they_o daily_o exhort_v people_n to_o be_v faithful_a to_o the_o end_n show_v they_o if_o they_o continue_v not_o they_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o fall_v short_a of_o the_o reward_n which_o be_v very_o true_a but_o no_o less_o inconsistent_a with_o that_o doctrine_n that_o affirm_v there_o be_v no_o hazard_n because_o no_o possibility_n of_o depart_v from_o the_o least_o measure_n of_o true_a grace_n which_o if_o true_a it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o beseech_v they_o to_o stand_v to_o who_o god_n have_v make_v it_o impossible_a to_o fall_n i_o shall_v not_o long_o insist_v upon_o the_o probation_n of_o this_o seeing_z what_o be_v say_v may_v suffice_v to_o answer_v my_o design_n and_o that_o the_o thing_n be_v also_o abundant_o prove_v by_o many_o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n that_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a protestant_n thence_o appear_v that_o the_o augustane_n confession_n condemn_v it_o as_o a_o error_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n to_o say_v that_o who_o once_o be_v justify_v they_o can_v lose_v the_o holy_a spirit_n many_o such_o like_a say_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o common_a place_n of_o philip_n melanchthon_n vossius_fw-la in_o his_o pelagian_a history_n lib._n 6._o testify_v grace_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n concern_v fall_v from_o grace_n that_o this_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o twelve_o these_o pag._n 587._o he_o have_v these_o word_n that_o this_o which_o we_o have_v say_v be_v the_o common_a sentiment_n of_o antiquity_n those_o at_o present_a can_v only_o deny_v who_o other_o way_n perhaps_o be_v man_n not_o unlearned_a but_o nevertheless_o in_o antiquity_n altogether_o stranger_n etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n thus_o observe_v i_o come_v to_o the_o objection_n of_o our_o opposer_n object_n 1_o §_o iii_o first_o they_o allege_v that_o those_o place_n mention_v of_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o faith_n be_v only_o understand_v of_o seem_a faith_n and_o not_o of_o a_o real_a
time_n be_v as_o full_a of_o the_o various_a tragedy_n act_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o this_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastic_a monarchy_n and_o commonwealth_n as_o the_o history_n of_o old_a time_n that_o give_v account_n of_o the_o war_n and_o contest_v that_o fall_v out_o both_o in_o the_o assyrian_a persian_a greek_a and_o roman_a empire_n these_o last_o upon_o this_o account_n though_o among_o those_o that_o be_v call_v christian_n have_v be_v no_o less_o bloody_a and_o monstrous_a than_o the_o former_a among_o heathen_n concern_v their_o outward_a empire_n and_o government_n thereof_o the_o ground_n and_o cause_n thereof_o now_o all_o this_o both_o among_o rapist_o and_o protestant_n proceed_v in_o that_o they_o seek_v in_o imitation_n to_o uphold_v a_o form_n and_o shadow_n of_o thing_n though_o they_o want_v the_o power_n virtue_n and_o substance_n though_o for_o many_o of_o their_o order_n and_o form_n they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o name_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o in_o opposition_n to_o all_o this_o mass_n of_o formality_n and_o heap_n of_o order_n rule_n and_o government_n we_o say_v the_o substance_n be_v chief_o to_o be_v seek_v after_o and_o the_o power_n virtue_n and_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v know_v and_o wait_v for_o which_o be_v one_o in_o all_o the_o different_a name_n and_o office_n the_o scripture_n make_v use_v of_o as_o appear_v by_o 1_o cor._n 12.4_o often_o beforementioned_a there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o after_o the_o apostle_n throughout_o the_o whole_a chapt._n have_v show_v how_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o spirit_n work_v in_o and_o quicken_v each_o member_n then_o in_o vers_n 28._o he_o show_v how_o thereby_o god_n have_v set_v in_o the_o church_n first_o apostles_n second_o prophet_n teacher_n etc._n etc._n and_o likewise_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n eph._n 4.11_o he_o show_v how_o by_o these_o gift_n he_o have_v give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n some_o teacher_n etc._n etc._n now_o it_o be_v never_o christ_n purpose_n nor_o the_o apostle_n that_o christian_n shall_v without_o this_o spirit_n and_o heavenly_a gift_n set_v up_o a_o shadow_n and_o form_n of_o these_o order_n and_o so_o make_v several_a rank_n and_o degree_n to_o establish_v a_o carnal_a ministry_n of_o man_n make_v without_o the_o life_n power_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v that_o work_n of_o antichrist_n and_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n iniquity_n the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n and_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n that_o have_v get_v up_o in_o the_o dark_a night_n of_o apostasy_n but_o in_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n gather_v together_o by_o god_n not_o only_o unto_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o truth_n but_o also_o into_o the_o power_n life_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v the_o orderer_n ruler_n and_o governor_n as_o in_o each_o particular_a so_o in_o the_o general_a and_o when_o they_o assemble_v together_o to_o wait_v upon_o god_n and_o worship_n and_o adore_v he_o then_o such_o as_o the_o spirit_n set_v apart_o to_o the_o ministry_n they_o such_o as_o the_o spirit_n set_v apart_o to_o the_o ministry_n their_o brethren_n hear_v they_o by_o its_o divine_a power_n and_o influence_n open_v their_o mouth_n and_o give_v they_o to_o exhort_v reprove_v and_o instruct_v with_o virtue_n and_o power_n these_o be_v thus_o of_o god_n ordain_v and_o admit_v into_o the_o ministry_n and_o their_o brethren_n can_v but_o hear_v they_o receive_v they_o and_o also_o honour_v they_o for_o their_o work_n sake_n and_o so_o this_o be_v not_o monopolise_v to_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o man_n as_o the_o clergy_n who_o be_v to_o that_o purpose_n educate_v and_o bring_v up_o laic_n the_o clergy_n and_o laic_n as_o other_o carnal_a artist_n and_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v despise_v as_o laic_n but_o it_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n to_o choose_v any_o who_o he_o see_v meet_v thereunto_o whether_o rich_a or_o poor_a servant_n or_o master_n young_a or_o old_a yea_o male_a or_o preach_v or_o woman_n may_v preach_v female_a and_o such_o as_o have_v this_o call_v verify_v the_o gospel_n by_o preach_v not_o in_o speech_n only_o but_o also_o in_o power_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o much_o fullness_n 1_o thess._n 1.5_o and_o can_v but_o be_v receive_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ._n object_n object_n §_o xxv_o but_o if_o it_o be_v object_v here_o that_o i_o seem_v hereby_o to_o make_v no_o distinction_n at_o all_o betwixt_o minister_n and_o other_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 12.29_o be_v all_o apostle_n be_v all_o prophet_n be_v all_o teacher_n etc._n etc._n from_o thence_o they_o insinuate_v that_o i_o also_o contradict_v his_o comparison_n in_o that_o chapter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o humane_a body_n as_o where_o he_o say_v vers_fw-la 17._o if_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v a_o eye_n where_o be_v the_o hear_v if_o the_o whole_a be_v hear_v where_o be_v the_o smell_a etc._n etc._n also_o the_o apostle_n not_o only_o thus_o distinguish_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n but_o also_o among_o themselves_o as_o name_v they_o distinct_o and_z separately_z apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n etc._n etc._n answ._n 1_o as_o to_o the_o last_o part_n of_o this_o objection_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v first_o answer_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o this_o diversity_n of_o name_n be_v not_o for_o to_o distinguish_v separate_a office_n person_n diversity_n of_o name_n make_v no_o distinct_a office_n but_o which_o may_v coincide_v or_o be_v together_o in_o one_o person_n but_o to_o denote_v the_o different_a and_o various_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n a_o manner_n of_o speech_n frequent_a with_o the_o apostle_n paul_n wherein_o he_o sometime_o exspatiate_v to_o the_o illustrate_v of_o the_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n grace_n as_o in_o particular_a rom._n 12.6_o have_v then_o gift_n differ_v according_a to_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v give_v to_o we_o whether_o prophecy_n let_v we_o prophesy_v according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o faith_n or_o ministry_n let_v we_o wait_v on_o our_o minister_a or_o he_o that_o teach_v on_o teach_v or_o he_o that_o exhort_v on_o exhortation_n now_o none_o will_v say_v from_o all_o this_o that_o these_o be_v distinct_a office_n or_o do_v not_o or_o may_v not_o coincide_v in_o one_o person_n as_o may_v all_o these_o other_o thing_n mention_v by_o he_o in_o the_o subsequent_a verse_n viz._n of_o love_a be_v kind_o affection_a fervency_n of_o spirit_n hospitality_n diligence_n blessing_n rejoice_v etc._n etc._n which_o yet_o he_o number_v forth_o as_o different_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o according_a to_o this_o objection_n may_v be_v place_v as_o distinct_a and_o separate_a office_n which_o be_v most_o absurd_a second_o in_o these_o very_a place_n mention_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o it_o be_v no_o real_a distinction_n of_o separate_a office_n because_o all_o acknowledge_v that_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n which_o the_o apostle_n there_o no_o less_o separate_v and_o distinguish_v than_o pastor_n and_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o coincide_v in_o the_o same_o office_n and_o person_n and_o therefore_o so_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o rest_n for_o prophecy_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o foretell_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v indeed_o a_o distinct_a gift_n but_o no_o distinct_a office_n and_o therefore_o our_o adversary_n do_v not_o place_v it_o among_o their_o several_a order_n neither_o will_v they_o deny_v but_o that_o both_o may_v be_v and_o have_v be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o some_o signification_n prophecy_n and_o prophesy_v its_o twofold_a signification_n that_o not_o only_o have_v be_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n and_o that_o there_o it_o have_v coincide_v in_o one_o person_n with_o these_o other_o office_n but_o also_o to_o some_o of_o the_o laic_n and_o so_o it_o have_v be_v find_v according_a to_o their_o own_o concession_n without_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o clergy_n prophecy_n in_o the_o other_o sense_n to_o wit_n as_o it_o signify_v a_o speak_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v not_o only_o peculiar_a to_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n saint_n to_o prophesy_v a_o privilege_n of_o teacher_n and_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n who_o ought_v so_o to_o prophesy_v but_o even_o a_o common_a privilege_n to_o the_o saint_n for_o though_o to_o instruct_v teach_v and_o exhort_v be_v proper_a to_o such_o as_o be_v more_o particular_o call_v to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o proper_a to_o they_o as_o not_o to_o be_v when_o the_o saint_n be_v meet_v together_o as_o any_o of_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o spirit_n common_a to_o
the_o persecutor_n and_o make_v their_o chariot_n wheel_n go_v on_o heavy_o thus_o after_o much_o and_o many_o kind_n of_o suffering_n thus_o patient_o bear_v which_o to_o rehearse_v will_v make_v a_o volumn_n of_o itself_o which_o may_v in_o due_a time_n be_v publish_v to_o the_o nation_n for_o we_o have_v they_o upon_o record_n a_o kind_a of_o negative_a liberty_n have_v be_v obtain_v so_o that_o at_o present_a for_o the_o most_o part_n we_o meet_v together_o without_o disturbance_n from_o the_o magistrate_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_n most_o protestant_n when_o they_o have_v not_o the_o allowance_n and_o tolerance_n of_o the_o magistrate_n meet_v only_o in_o secret_a and_o hide_v their_o testimony_n and_o if_o they_o be_v discover_v if_o there_o be_v any_o probability_n of_o make_v their_o escape_n by_o force_n though_o it_o be_v by_o cut_v off_o those_o that_o seek_v they_o out_o they_o will_v do_v it_o whereby_o they_o lose_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o suffering_n by_o not_o appear_v as_o the_o innocent_a follower_n of_o christ_n nor_o have_v a_o testimony_n of_o their_o harmlessness_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o their_o pursuer_n their_o fury_n by_o such_o resistance_n be_v the_o more_o kindle_v against_o they_o as_o to_o this_o last_o part_n of_o resist_v such_o as_o persecute_v they_o they_o can_v lay_v claim_n to_o no_o precept_n from_o christ_n nor_o any_o example_n of_o he_o or_o his_o apostle_n approve_v but_o as_o to_o the_o first_o part_n for_o flee_v and_o meet_v secret_o object_n object_n and_o not_o open_o testify_v for_o the_o truth_n they_o usual_o object_v that_o say_v of_o christ_n matth._n 10.23_o when_o they_o persecute_v you_o in_o this_o city_n flee_v you_o into_o another_o and_o act._n 9.4_o that_o the_o disciple_n meet_v secret_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o act_n 9_o 25._o that_o paul_n be_v let_v out_o of_o damascus_n in_o a_o basket_n down_o by_o the_o w●ll_n to_o all_o which_o i_o answer_v first_o as_o to_o that_o say_v of_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o question_n answ._n if_o it_o have_v any_o further_a relation_n than_o to_o that_o particular_a message_n with_o which_o he_o send_v they_o to_o the_o jew_n yea_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o word_n seem_v express_o to_o hold_v forth_o so_o much_o for_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v go_v over_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n till_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v come_v now_o a_o particular_a practice_n or_o command_v for_o a_o particular_a time_n will_v not_o serve_v for_o a_o precedent_n to_o any_o at_o this_o day_n to_o shun_v the_o cross_n of_o christ._n but_o suppose_v this_o precept_n to_o reach_v further_o it_o must_v be_v so_o understand_v to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o only_o according_a as_o the_o spirit_n give_v liberty_n else_o no_o man_n that_o can_v flee_v may_v suffer_v persecution_n how_o then_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n john_n and_o peter_n flee_v allow_v flee_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n not_o allow_v when_o they_o be_v the_o first_o time_n persecute_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_n go_v the_o next_o day_n after_o they_o be_v discharge_v by_o the_o council_n and_o preach_v bold_o to_o the_o people_n but_o indeed_o many_o be_v but_o too_o capable_a to_o stretch_v such_o say_n as_o these_o for_o self-preservation_n and_o therefore_o have_v great_a ground_n to_o fear_v when_o they_o interpret_v they_o that_o they_o shun_v to_o witness_v for_o christ_n for_o fear_n of_o hurt_a to_o themselves_o lest_o they_o mistake_v they_o as_o for_o that_o private_a meeting_n of_o the_o disciple_n we_o have_v only_o a_o account_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n but_o that_o suffice_v not_o to_o make_v of_o it_o a_o precedent_n for_o we_o and_o man_n aptness_n to_o imitate_v they_o in_o that_o which_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v may_v have_v be_v a_o act_n of_o weakness_n and_o not_o in_o other_o thing_n of_o the_o contrary_a nature_n show_n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o true_a zeal_n to_o be_v like_o those_o disciple_n but_o indeed_o a_o desire_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o which_o move_v they_o so_o to_o do_v last_o as_o to_o that_o of_o paul_n be_v convey_v out_o of_o damascus_n the_o case_n be_v singular_a and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o it_o be_v do_v by_o a_o special_a allowance_n from_o god_n who_o have_v design_v he_o to_o be_v a_o principal_a minister_n of_o his_o gospel_n see_v meet_v in_o his_o wisdom_n to_o disappoint_v the_o wicked_a counsel_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o our_o adversary_n have_v no_o such_o pretext_n for_o flee_v who_o flee_v proceed_v from_o self-preservation_n not_o from_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o that_o paul_n make_v not_o this_o the_o method_n of_o his_o procedure_n appear_v in_o that_o at_o another_o time_n notwithstanding_o the_o persuasion_n of_o his_o friend_n and_o certain_a prophecy_n of_o his_o suffering_n to_o come_v he_o will_v not_o be_v dissuade_v to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n which_o according_a to_o the_o forementioned_a rule_n he_o shall_v have_v do_v but_o last_o to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n glory_n to_o god_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o now_o these_o twenty_o five_o year_n since_o we_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o distinct_a and_o separate_a people_n have_v give_v we_o faithful_o to_o suffer_v for_o his_o name_n without_o shrink_v or_o flee_v the_o cross_n and_o what_o liberty_n we_o now_o enjoy_v it_o be_v by_o his_o mercy_n and_o not_o by_o any_o outward_a work_v or_o procure_v of_o our_o own_o but_o it_o be_v he_o have_v wrought_v upon_o the_o heart_n of_o our_o opposer_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o outward_a interest_n have_v procure_v it_o unto_o we_o but_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o harmlessness_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o our_o superior_n for_o god_n have_v preserve_v we_o hitherto_o in_o the_o patient_a suffer_v of_o jesus_n that_o we_o have_v not_o give_v away_o our_o cause_n by_o persecute_v any_o which_o few_o if_o any_o christian_n that_o i_o know_v can_v say_v now_o against_o our_o unparallelled_a yet_o innocent_a and_o christian_a cause_n our_o malicious_a enemy_n have_v nothing_o to_o say_v but_o that_o if_o we_o have_v power_n we_o will_v do_v so_o likewise_o this_o be_v a_o piece_n of_o mere_a unreasonabe_n malice_n and_o a_o privilege_n they_o take_v to_o judge_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v which_o they_o have_v not_o by_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v the_o great_a height_n of_o harsh_a judgement_n to_o say_v man_n will_v do_v contrary_a to_o their_o profess_a principle_n if_o they_o can_v who_o have_v from_o their_o practice_n hitherto_o give_v no_o ground_n for_o it_o and_o wherein_o they_o only_o judge_v other_o by_o themselves_o such_o conjecture_n can_v militate_v against_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v innocent_a and_o if_o ever_o we_o prove_v guilty_a of_o persecution_n by_o force_v other_o man_n by_o corporal_a punishment_n to_o our_o way_n then_o let_v we_o be_v judge_v the_o great_a of_o hypocrite_n and_o let_v not_o any_o spare_a to_o persecute_v we_o amen_n say_v my_o soul_n proposition_n xv._o concern_v salutation_n and_o recreation_n etc._n etc._n see_v the_o chief_a end_n of_o all_o religion_n be_v to_o redeem_v man_n from_o the_o spirit_n and_o vain_a conversation_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o lead_v into_o inward_a communion_n with_o god_n before_o who_o if_o we_o fear_v always_o we_o be_v account_v happy_a 2.8_o eph._n 5.11_o 1_o pet._n 1.14_o joh._n 5.44_o jer._n 10.3_o act_n 10.26_o matt._n 15.13_o col._n 2.8_o therefore_o all_o the_o vain_a custom_n and_o habit_n thereof_o both_o in_o word_n and_o deed_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v and_o forsake_v by_o those_o who_o come_v to_o this_o fear_n such_o as_o the_o take_n off_o the_o hat_n to_o a_o man_n the_o bowing_n and_o cringing_n of_o the_o body_n and_o such_o other_o salutation_n of_o that_o kind_n with_o all_o the_o foolish_a and_o superstitious_a formality_n attend_v they_o all_o which_o man_n have_v invent_v in_o his_o degenerate_a state_n to_o feed_v his_o pride_n in_o the_o vain_a pomp_n and_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n as_o also_o the_o unprofitable_a play_n frivolous_a recreation_n sport_n and_o game_n be_v which_o be_v invent_v to_o pass_v away_o the_o precious_a time_n and_o divert_v the_o mind_n from_o the_o witness_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o from_o the_o live_a sense_n of_o his_o fear_n and_o from_o that_o evangelical_n spirit_n wherewith_o christian_n ought_v to_o be_v leven_v and_o which_o lead_v into_o sobriety_n gravity_n and_o godly_a fear_n in_o which_o as_o we_o abide_v the_o blessing_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v feel_v to_o attend_v we_o in_o those_o action_n which_o we_o be_v necessary_o engage_v in_o order_n to_o the_o take_a care_n for_o the_o sustenance_n of_o the_o outward_a man._n §_o i._o have_v hitherto_o treat_v of_o the_o principle_n of_o religion_n both_o
and_o disobey_v he_o and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o the_o honour_n that_o come_v from_o god_n but_o the_o honour_n of_o this_o world_n which_o the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n give_v and_o receive_v one_o from_o another_o how_o can_v the_o child_n of_o god_n such_o as_o be_v christian_n indeed_o give_v or_o receive_v that_o honour_n among_o themselves_o read_v hieron_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o celant_fw-la admonish_v she_o that_o she_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v to_o none_o for_o her_o nobibity_n for_o the_o christian_a religion_n admit_v not_o of_o respect_n of_o person_n neither_o be_v man_n to_o be_v esteem_v because_o of_o their_o outward_a condition_n but_o according_a to_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o be_v esteem_v either_o noble_a or_o ●ase_a he_o that_o obey_v not_o sin_n be_v free_a who_o be_v strong_a in_o virtue_n be_v noble_a let_v the_o epistle_n of_o james_n be_v read_v without_o come_v under_o the_o reproof_n of_o christ_n who_o say_v that_o such_o as_o do_v so_o can_v believe_v but_o further_o if_o we_o respect_v the_o cause_n that_o most_o frequent_o procure_v to_o man_n these_o title_n of_o honour_n there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o that_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o be_v because_o of_o any_o christian_a virtue_n but_o rather_o for_o thing_n to_o be_v discommend_v among_o christian_n as_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o prince_n procure_v by_o flatter_v and_o often_o by_o worse_a mean_n yea_o the_o most_o frequent_a and_o account_v among_o man_n most-honourable_a be_v fight_v or_o some_o great_a martial_a exploit_n which_o can_v add_v nothing_o to_o a_o christian_n worth_n since_o sure_o it_o be_v it_o be_v desirable_a there_o be_v no_o fight_n among_o christian_n at_o all_o and_o in_o so_o far_o as_o there_o be_v it_o show_v they_o be_v not_o right_a christian_n and_o james_n tell_v we_o that_o all_o fight_a proceed_v from_o the_o lust_n so_o that_o it_o be_v fit_a for_o christian_n by_o the_o sword_n of_o god_n spirit_n to_o fight_v against_o their_o lust_n than_o by_o the_o prevalency_n of_o their_o lust_n to_o destroy_v one_o another_o whatever_o honour_n any_o may_v have_v attain_v of_o old_a under_o the_o law_n this_o way_n we_o find_v under_o the_o gospel_n christian_n commend_v for_o suffer_v not_o for_o fight_v neither_o do_v any_o of_o christ_n disciple_n save_o one_o offer_v outward_a violence_n by_o the_o sword_n in_o cut_v off_o malchus_n ear_n for_o which_o he_o receive_v no_o title_n of_o honour_n but_o a_o just_a reproof_n final_o if_o we_o look_v either_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o honour_n the_o cause_n of_o it_o the_o way_n it_o be_v convey_v the_o term_n in_o which_o it_o be_v deliver_v it_o can_v be_v use_v by_o such_o as_o mind_n to_o be_v christian_n in_o good_a earnest_n §_o iv_o now_o beside_o these_o general_a title_n of_o honour_n what_o gross_a abuse_n be_v creep_v in_o among_o such_o as_o be_v call_v christian_n in_o the_o use_n of_o compliment_n wherein_o not_o servant_n to_o master_n or_o other_o with_o respect_n to_o any_o such_o kind_n of_o relation_n do_v say_v and_o write_v to_o one_o another_o at_o every_o turn_n your_o humble_a servant_n your_o most_o obedient_a servant_n civility_n lie_v account_v civility_n etc._n etc._n such_o wicked_a custom_n have_v to_o the_o great_a prejudice_n of_o soul_n accustom_a christian_n to_o lie_n and_o to_o use_v lie_v be_v now_o come_v to_o be_v account_v civility_n o_o horrid_a apostasy_n for_o it_o be_v notorious_o know_v that_o the_o use_v of_o these_o compliment_n import_v not_o any_o design_n of_o service_n neither_o be_v any_o such_o fool_n as_o to_o think_v so_o for_o if_o we_o shall_v put_v they_o to_o it_o that_o say_v so_o they_o will_v not_o doubt_v to_o think_v we_o abuse_v they_o and_o will_v let_v we_o know_v they_o give_v we_o word●_n in_o course_n and_o no_o more_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o such_o as_o pretend_v to_o scripture_n as_o their_o rule_n shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o use_v such_o thing_n since_o elihu_n that_o have_v not_o the_o scripture_n will_v by_o the_o light_n within_o he_o which_o these_o man_n think_v insufficient_a say_v job_n 32.21_o 22._o let_v i_o not_o accept_v any_o man_n person_n neither_o let_v i_o give_v flatter_a title_n unto_o man_n for_o i_o know_v not_o to_o give_v flatter_a title_n in_o so_o do_v my_o maker_n will_v soon_o take_v i_o away_o god._n away_o this_o history_n be_v report_v by_o casaubonus_n in_o his_o book_n of_o manner_n and_o custom_n pag._n 169._o in_o this_o last_o age_n he_o be_v esteem_v a_o uncivil_a man_n who_o will_v not_o either_o to_o his_o inferior_a or_o equal_a subscribe_v himself_o servant_n but_o sulpitius_n severus_n be_v heretofore_o sharp_o reprove_v by_o paulinus_n bishop_n of_o nola_n because_o in_o his_o epistle_n he_o have_v subscribe_v himself_o his_o servant_n say_v beware_v thou_o subscribe_v not_o thyself_o his_o servant_n who_o be_v thy_o brother_n for_o flattery_n be_v sinful_a not_o a_o testimony_n of_o humility_n to_o give_v their_o honour_n to_o man_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o the_o one_o lord_n master_n and_o god._n a_o certain_a ancient_a devout_a man_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n subscribe_v himself_o to_o a_o bishop_n your_o humble_a servant_n wherein_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o be_v more_o real_a than_o our_o usual_a complementer_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v sharp_o reprove_v for_o it_o but_o they_o usual_o object_n to_o defend_v themselves_o that_o luke_n say_v most_o excellent_a theophilus_n and_o paul_n most_o noble_a festus_n i_o answer_v since_o luke_n write_v that_o by_o the_o dictate_v of_o the_o infallible_a spirit_n of_o god_n i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v doubt_v but_o theophilus_n do_v deserve_v it_o as_o be_v real_o endue_v with_o that_o virtue_n festus_n concern_v the_o title_n paul_n give_v to_o festus_n in_o which_o case_n we_o shall_v not_o condemn_v those_o that_o do_v it_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n but_o it_o be_v not_o prove_v that_o luke_n give_v theophilus_n this_o title_n as_o that_o which_o be_v inherent_a to_o he_o either_o by_o his_o father_n or_o by_o any_o patent_n theophilus_n have_v obtain_v from_o any_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o that_o he_o will_v have_v give_v it_o he_o in_o case_n he_o have_v not_o be_v true_o excellent_a and_o without_o this_o be_v prove_v which_o never_o can_v there_o can_v nothing_o hence_o be_v deduce_v against_o we_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o that_o of_o paul_n to_o festus_n who_o he_o will_v not_o have_v call_v such_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v true_o noble_a as_o indeed_o he_o be_v in_o that_o he_o suffer_v he_o to_o be_v hear_v in_o his_o own_o cause_n and_o will_v not_o give_v way_n to_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o jew_n against_o he_o it_o be_v not_o because_o of_o any_o outward_a title_n bestow_v upon_o festus_n that_o he_o so_o call_v he_o else_o he_o will_v have_v give_v the_o same_o compellation_n to_o his_o predecessor_n felix_n who_o have_v the_o same_o office_n but_o be_v a_o covetous_a man_n we_o find_v he_o give_v he_o no_o such_o style_n §_o v._o it_o will_v not_o be_v unfit_a in_o this_o place_n latin_n the_o singular_a number_n to_o one_o person_n use_v in_o the_o latin_n to_o say_v something_o concern_v the_o use_n of_o the_o singular_a number_n to_o one_o person_n of_o this_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n in_o the_o latin_n for_o when_o we_o speak_v to_o one_o we_o always_o use_v the_o pronoun_n tutor_n and_o he_o that_o will_v do_v otherwise_o will_v break_v the_o rule_n of_o grammar_n for_o what_o boy_n learn_v his_o rudiment_n be_v ignorant_a that_o it_o be_v incongruous_a to_o say_v vos_fw-la amas_fw-la vos_fw-la legis_fw-la that_o be_v you_o love_v you_o read_v speak_v to_o one_o but_o the_o pride_n of_o man_n that_o have_v corrupt_v many_o thing_n refuse_v also_o to_o use_v this_o simplicity_n of_o speak_v in_o the_o vulgar_a language_n for_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o a_o vain_a opinion_n of_o themselves_o as_o if_o the_o singular_a number_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o they_o they_o will_v have_v other_o to_o speak_v to_o they_o in_o the_o plural_a hence_o luther_n in_o his_o play_n reprove_v and_o mock_v this_o manner_n of_o speak_v say_v magister_fw-la vos_fw-la es_fw-la iratus_fw-la which_o corruption_n erasmus_n sufficient_o refute_v in_o his_o colloquy_n concern_v which_o likewise_o james_n howel_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o nobility_n of_o england_n before_o the_o french_a and_o english_a dictionary_n take_v notice_n that_o both_o in_o france_n and_o in_o other_o nation_n the_o word_n thou_o be_v use_v in_o speak_v to_o one_o but_o by_o success_n of_o time_n when_o the_o roman_a commonwealth_n grow_v into_o a_o empire_n the_o courtier_n begin_v to_o magnify_v the_o emperor_n as_o be_v
bring_v they_o down_o to_o it_o also_o for_o see_v it_o be_v a_o truth_n acknowledge_v both_o by_o they_o and_o we_o cause_n the_o spirit_n have_v work_v in_o we_o as_o a_o efficient_a cause_n that_o all_o true_a christian_n and_o child_n of_o god_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v in_o they_o at_o least_o as_o a_o efficient_a cause_n from_o this_o we_o urge_v they_o thus_o either_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v in_o they_o as_o a_o efficient_a cause_n or_o they_o have_v not_o if_o they_o say_v they_o have_v not_o they_o confess_v they_o be_v not_o true_a christian_n or_o child_n of_o god_n which_o we_o suppose_v they_o will_v be_v loath_a to_o say_v if_o they_o say_v they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o a_o efficient_a cause_n of_o faith_n work_v in_o they_o and_o subjective_o enlighten_v they_o let_v they_o prove_v it_o or_o give_v we_o a_o evidence_n of_o it_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o poor_a man_n they_o be_v take_v in_o their_o own_o snare_n we_o know_v all_o rational_a and_o sober_a man_n will_v acknowledge_v that_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v tb_n receive_v their_o affirmation_n without_o proof_n more_o than_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o receive_v we_o nor_o indeed_o so_o much_o we_o be_v as_o the_o case_n stand_v but_o defendant_n as_o touch_v their_o answer_n to_o r._n b._n his_o retortion_n about_o a_o evidence_n it_o shall_v be_v examine_v in_o the_o next_o section_n in_o pag._n 60._o they_o tell_v that_o we_o assign_v they_o at_o last_o some_o shadow_n of_o evidence_n namely_o 1_o our_o own_o declaration_n 2._o the_o scripture_n 3._o the_o immediate_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o that_o these_o be_v not_o shadow_n will_v appear_v to_o the_o judicious_a and_o well-disposed_a if_o they_o consider_v these_o two_o thing_n 1._o that_o by_o our_o declaration_n we_o mean_v not_o a_o bare_a verbal_a declaration_n have_v no_o virtue_n or_o manifestation_n of_o life_n in_o it_o for_o we_o confess_v such_o may_v be_v as_o good_a a_o ground_n for_o a_o heretic_n in_o way_n of_o evidence_n it_o a_o declaration_n proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n no_o heretic_n have_v it_o but_o by_o our_o declaration_n we_o mean_v such_o a_o declaration_n as_o do_v real_o proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o we_o and_o be_v therefore_o a_o live_a declaration_n have_v a_o manifestation_n of_o life_n in_o it_o and_o with_o it_o and_o which_o be_v not_o only_o in_o word_n of_o life_n or_o live_v word_n utter_v through_o we_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n but_o also_o in_o work_n of_o life_n or_o live_a work_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o say_v christ_n by_o their_o fruit_n shall_v you_o know_v they_o now_o such_o a_o declaration_n can_v no_o heretic_n have_v however_o he_o may_v pretend_v to_o it_o if_o our_o adversary_n say_v that_o we_o only_o pretend_v to_o such_o a_o thing_n we_o answer_v they_o with_o their_o own_o rule_n affirmanti_fw-la incumbit_fw-la probatio_fw-la i._n e._n the_o affirmer_n ought_v to_o prove_v let_v they_o prove_v we_o only_o to_o be_v pretender_n which_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o do_v nor_o can_v do_v and_o indeed_o such_o a_o declaration_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o apostle_n as_o when_o john_n say_v we_o be_v of_o god_n etc._n etc._n be_v a_o evidence_n that_o no_o heretic_n can_v just_o pretend_v to_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o most_o unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a thing_n to_o require_v of_o we_o any_o other_o evidence_n of_o our_o have_v the_o spirit_n than_o that_o which_o every_o true_a christian_a may_v and_o aught_o to_o give_v see_v we_o pretend_v to_o no_o other_o spirit_n but_o that_o which_o every_o true_a christian_a have_v nor_o to_o any_o revelation_n but_o these_o which_o be_v the_o privilege_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n nor_o to_o any_o doctrine_n which_o be_v not_o conform_v to_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n as_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v and_o as_o g._n k._n have_v already_o show_v in_o his_o book_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n which_o neither_o the_o student_n nor_o their_o master_n have_v give_v we_o any_o refutation_n of_o now_o have_v not_o all_o good_a christian_n these_o three_o evidence_n for_o they_o year_n 1675_o and_o we_o can_v prove_v by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o be_v as_o applicable_a to_o we_o as_o to_o any_o upon_o earth_n and_o here_o note_v that_o when_o we_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o best_a outward_a evidence_n that_o can_v be_v give_v we_o mean_v it_o not_o as_o a_o particular_a evidence_n but_o as_o a_o general_a common_a to_o all_o good_a christian_n evidence_n the_o scripture_n a_o evidence_n for_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n can_v prove_v that_o any_o particular_a man_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o such_o a_o way_n as_o true_a christian_n have_v it_o but_o it_o prove_v in_o general_a that_o all_o true_a christian_n have_v it_o yea_o and_o all_o man_n to_o convince_v they_o at_o least_o in_o pag._n 61_o 62._o they_o reject_v the_o scriptures-testimony_n as_o a_o evidence_n to_o we_o because_o according_a to_o we_o the_o scripture_n testimony_n have_v no_o evidence_n without_o the_o spirit_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o we_o say_v but_o it_o have_v a_o evidence_n with_o the_o spirit_n his_o inward_a evidence_n go_v along_o with_o it_o which_o inward_a evidence_n we_o say_v do_v go_v along_o with_o it_o sufficient_o to_o convince_v every_o well-disposed_a intellect_n and_o this_o we_o can_v prove_v from_o the_o scriptures-testimony_n nor_o be_v this_o to_o commit_v a_o unlawful_a circle_n as_o they_o foolish_o allege_v which_o be_v but_o a_o old_a threadbare_a alledgance_n of_o papist_n against_o the_o protestant_n as_o turnbull_n allege_v on_o paraeus_n that_o he_o prove_v the_o spirit_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o spirit_n some_o protestant_n in_o our_o day_n do_v miserable_o seek_v to_o extricate_v themselves_o of_o that_o circle_n that_o they_o know_v the_o spirit_n by_o the_o scripture_n objective_o and_o they_o know_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o spirit_n effective_o and_o so_o indeed_o they_o get_v free_a of_o the_o circle_n as_o not_o be_v in_o eodem_fw-la genere_fw-la i._n e._n in_o the_o same_o kind_n but_o they_o affirm_v a_o gross_a untruth_n that_o the_o spirit_n be_v influence_n be_v only_o effective_a and_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la subjecti_fw-la whereas_o we_o know_v it_o be_v objective_n and_o can_v prove_v both_o from_o scripture_n and_o primitive_a protestant_n see_v g._n k._n his_o book_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o quakerism_n no_o popery_n where_o the_o same_o be_v at_o length_n prove_v but_o we_o have_v a_o most_o clear_a way_n to_o extricate_v ourselves_o of_o that_o circle_n impose_v on_o we_o by_o papist_n and_o these_o student_n etc._n the_o scripture_n testimony_n know_v by_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n that_o we_o know_v the_o scripture_n testimony_n by_o the_o spirit_n tanquam_fw-la a_o priori_fw-la as_o we_o know_v the_o effect_n by_o the_o cause_n and_o we_o know_v the_o spirit_n be_v testimony_n by_o the_o scripture_n tanquam_fw-la a_o posteriori_fw-la as_o we_o know_v the_o cause_n by_o the_o effect_n and_o so_o both_o be_v objective_n and_o yet_o in_o a_o divers_a kind_n because_o the_o objective_a evidence_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v a_o self-evidence_n and_o primary_n the_o objective_a evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v but_o derive_v and_o secondary_a in_o their_o answer_n to_o g._n k._n his_o retortion_n from_o the_o practice_n of_o christ_n who_o though_o his_o own_o immediate_a testimony_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v refer_v they_o unto_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o most_o miserable_o betake_v themselves_o to_o their_o old_a trade_n of_o affirm_v thing_n without_o any_o proof_n and_o yet_o on_o the_o proof_n of_o these_o thing_n the_o whole_a stress_n of_o their_o answer_n lie_v as_o 1._o they_o say_v the_o jew_n reject_v only_o the_o outward_a immediate_a testimony_n of_o christ_n however_o dare_v they_o say_v but_o that_o the_o outward_a immediate_a testimony_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o yet_o he_o refer_v they_o unto_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n 2._o they_o say_v they_o have_v no_o such_o testimony_n themselves_o as_o the_o inward_a objective_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n 3._o they_o say_v according_a to_o christ_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n mean_v the_o primary_n rule_n and_o so_o they_o set_v the_o scripture_n above_o christ_n his_o own_o immediate_a outward_a testimony_n a_o most_o gross_a disorder_n year_n 1676_o all_o which_o we_o reject_v as_o mere_a affirmation_n without_o any_o proof_n their_o insinuation_n that_o g._n k._n act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o cunning_a sophist_n when_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n repeat_v by_o they_o pag._n 4._o be_v no_o less_o
all_o which_o they_o bare_o assert_v but_o do_v not_o offer_v to_o prove_v again_o they_o say_v it_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a action_n and_o applicatio_fw-la agentis_fw-la ad_fw-la passum_fw-la but_o how_o do_v they_o prove_v it_o here_o they_o be_v as_o dumb_a as_o stone_n perhaps_o they_o think_v to_o prove_v it_o because_o manifestation_n be_v a_o nomen_fw-la verbale_n which_o common_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o active_a verb_n signify_v a_o action_n but_o this_o be_v mere_o to_o play_v in_o word_n and_o not_o to_o dispute_v for_o they_o may_v as_o well_o say_v because_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v call_v the_o creation_n for_o creation_n be_v a_o active_a verbale_n therefore_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v a_o mere_a action_n or_o applicatio_fw-la agentis_fw-la ad_fw-la passum_fw-la we_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o action_n or_o motion_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n may_v also_o be_v call_v a_o manifestation_n but_o we_o say_v the_o seed_n itself_o be_v also_o a_o manifestation_n and_o those_o inward_a heavenly_a refreshment_n which_o god_n minister_v unto_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o saint_n be_v as_o real_a substantial_a spiritual_a manifestation_n of_o his_o goodness_n as_o the_o outward_a earthly_a refreshment_n to_o wit_n meat_n and_o drink_n be_v real_a substantial_a natural_a manifestation_n last_o they_o query_n if_o the_o manifestation_n be_v a_o substance_n whether_o be_v it_o one_o manifestation_n or_o all_o the_o manifestation_n to_o this_o we_o answer_v they_o that_o please_v to_o call_v the_o action_n or_o motion_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o a_o efficient_a cause_n a_o manifestation_n may_v easy_o distinguish_v manifestation_n as_o it_o be_v a_o principle_n or_o quid_fw-la permanens_fw-la or_o as_o it_o be_v a_o action_n or_o quid_fw-la transiens_fw-la now_o to_o apply_v we_o say_v the_o substantial_a manifestation_n of_o god_n inward_o to_o our_o soul_n be_v many_o as_o they_o be_v quid_fw-la permanens_fw-la and_o per_fw-la modum_fw-la principii_fw-la for_o as_o god_n nourish_v our_o outward_a man_n not_o with_o bread_n and_o drink_v once_o only_o but_o often_o and_o many_o be_v our_o outward_a refreshment_n all_o which_o be_v substance_n agree_v in_o this_o that_o they_o be_v manifestation_n and_o pledge_n of_o god_n bounty_n unto_o we_o so_o do_v he_o nourish_v our_o inward_a man_n with_o spiritual_a bread_n and_o drink_v not_o once_o only_o but_o often_o give_v we_o daily_o the_o super-substantial_a bread_n as_o the_o word_n in_o the_o prayer_n may_v be_v translate_v and_o have_v be_v by_o some_o learned_a men._n and_o thus_o we_o have_v answer_v their_o last_o argument_n in_o their_o §_o 5._o without_o recur_v to_o any_o idea_n platonica_fw-la a_o term_n they_o vain_o bring_v in_o to_o their_o argument_n to_o move_v people_n to_o laugh_v at_o their_o folly_n and_o thus_o we_o hope_v it_o be_v apparent_a that_o we_o have_v no_o need_n to_o retract_v our_o answer_n give_v in_o the_o dispute_n as_o they_o vain_o imagine_v it_o will_v be_v more_o labour_n and_o expense_n of_o time_n and_o paper_n than_o the_o thing_n be_v worth_a to_o answer_v they_o in_o all_o their_o pitiful_a ridiculous_a reason_n in_o these_o matter_n in_o every_o particular_a therefore_o not_o to_o weary_v the_o reader_n nor_o misspend_v time_n we_o shall_v set_v down_o some_o few_o clear_a distinct_a proposition_n which_o shall_v clear_o answer_v any_o seem_a difficulty_n allege_v by_o they_o in_o this_o whole_a section_n as_o in_o relation_n to_o christ._n 1._o proposition_n the_o word_n or_o son_n of_o god_n have_v the_o whole_a entire_a prop._n i._n nature_n of_o man_n spirit_z soul_n and_o body_n unite_v to_o he_o in_o the_o heaven_n and_o he_o be_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n what_o he_o be_v upon_o earth_n both_o in_o spirit_n soul_n and_o body_n 2._o christ_n in_o we_o or_o the_o seed_n be_v not_o a_o three_o spiritual_a nature_n distinct_a prop._n two_o from_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v crucify_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n at_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o same_o that_o be_v in_o we_o be_v and_o be_v in_o he_o and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o he_o it_o be_v the_o fullness_n or_o spring_n of_o the_o same_o in_o we_o as_o the_o stream_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o difference_n but_o such_o as_o be_v betwixt_o the_o spring_n and_o the_o stream_n which_o be_v one_o in_o their_o nature_n and_o substance_n 3._o we_o say_v that_o the_o same_o seed_n and_o life_n be_v in_o we_o which_o be_v in_o prop._n iii._o he_o and_o be_v in_o he_o in_o the_o fullness_n as_o water_n be_v in_o the_o spring_n and_o in_o we_o as_o the_o stream_n and_o this_o seed_n and_o spiritual_a nature_n which_o be_v both_o in_o he_o and_o we_o do_v belong_v to_o he_o as_o he_o be_v the_o second_o adam_n or_o man_n christ._n therefore_o this_o seed_n be_v in_o we_o the_o man_n christ_n be_v in_o we_o not_o according_a to_o his_o whole_a manhood_n but_o according_a unto_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a unto_o it_o and_o yet_o without_o all_o division_n as_o the_o natural_a life_n be_v in_o all_o the_o member_n but_o more_o principal_o in_o the_o head_n and_o heart_n without_o any_o division_n so_o this_o spiritual_a life_n and_o nature_n be_v both_o in_o christ_n our_o head_n and_o in_o we_o by_o which_o he_o dwell_v in_o we_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n do_v in_o the_o body_n and_o we_o eat_v and_o partake_v of_o his_o flesh._n 4._o but_o if_o they_o argue_v that_o at_o least_o christ_n have_v three_o nature_n in_o prop._n four_o himself_o we_o say_v their_o own_o principle_n will_v conclude_v that_o as_o much_o as_o we_o for_o the_o godhead_n be_v one_o nature_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o second_o and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o body_n be_v the_o three_o and_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o teach_v that_o as_o god_n be_v three_o person_n in_o one_o nature_n so_o christ_n be_v three_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n 5._o although_o the_o word_n or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v assume_v into_o union_n with_o prop._n v._n itself_o not_o only_o two_o nature_n but_o three_o it_o shall_v not_o make_v either_o two_o or_o three_o christ_n but_o one._n for_o they_o grant_v that_o the_o word_n have_v assume_v two_o to_o wit_n the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o the_o man_n christ_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o two_o christ_n but_o one_o even_o as_o the_o king_n be_v but_o one_o king_n although_o he_o possess_v three_o kingdom_n for_o ad_fw-la multiplicationem_fw-la obliquorum_fw-la non_fw-la multiplicantur_fw-la concreta_fw-la as_o your_o logic_n teach_v 6._o the_o seed_n and_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n both_o in_o he_o and_o in_o we_o belong_v to_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o second_o adam_n be_v as_o real_o and_o immediate_o prop._n vi_fw-la unite_a unto_o the_o word_n as_o his_o outward_a body_n be_v for_o the_o whole_a manhood_n of_o christ_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o logos_fw-la and_o the_o logos_fw-la to_o it_o and_o in_o it_o therefore_o the_o suffering_n of_o this_o seed_n and_o spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o be_v as_o real_o his_o suffering_n as_o these_o he_o accomplish_v at_o jerusalem_n prop._n seven_o 7._o this_o seed_n be_v not_o our_o soul_n but_o be_v a_o medium_fw-la betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o and_o our_o union_n with_o god_n be_v but_o mediate_v through_o this_o whereas_o the_o union_n of_o god_n with_o this_o be_v immediate_a therefore_o none_o of_o we_o be_v either_o christ_n or_o god_n but_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o prop._n viij_o 8._o see_v this_o seed_n and_o spiritual_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o both_o in_o he_o and_o in_o we_o it_o be_v most_o unreasonable_a to_o argue_v that_o there_o be_v as_o many_o christ_n as_o man_n as_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a to_o argue_v that_o because_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v in_o all_o his_o member_n that_o therefore_o as_o many_o member_n as_o many_o soul_n the_o element_n of_o the_o air_n be_v but_o one_o only_a element_n although_o it_o fill_v the_o whole_a universe_n betwixt_o the_o star_n and_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o element_n of_o water_n be_v but_o one_o although_o it_o fill_v many_o channel_n prop._n ix_o 9_o christ_n outward_o die_v but_o once_o but_o inward_o he_o die_v in_o a_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a sense_n as_o often_o as_o any_o crucify_v he_o to_o themselves_o by_o their_o unfaithfulness_n and_o disobedience_n as_o the_o scripture_n declare_v prop._n x._o 10._o as_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n without_o we_o we_o own_v it_o against_o the_o socinian_o and_o that_o it_o be_v full_a and_o complete_a in_o its_o kind_n yet_o not_o so_o as_o to_o exclude_v the_o real_a worth_n of_o the_o work_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o nor_o his_o present_a
with_o their_o grandeur_n and_o worldly_a glory_n calamity_n war_n calamity_n they_o sheathe_v their_o sword_n in_o one_o another_o bowel_n ruin_n waste_n and_o destroy_v whole_a country_n expose_v to_o the_o great_a misery_n many_o thousand_o family_n make_v thousand_o of_o widow_n and_o ten_o thousand_o of_o orphan_n cause_v the_o bank_n to_o overflow_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o those_o for_o who_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shed_v his_o precious_a blood_n and_o spend_v and_o destroy_v many_o of_o the_o good_a creature_n of_o god_n and_o all_o this_o while_n they_o pretend_v to_o be_v follower_n of_o the_o lamb_n like_o jesus_n who_o come_v not_o to_o destroy_v man_n life_n but_o to_o save_v they_o the_o song_n of_o who_o appearance_n to_o the_o world_n be_v 2.14_o luk._n 2.14_o glory_n to_o god_n in_o the_o high_a and_o good_a will_n and_o peace_n to_o all_o man_n not_o to_o kill_v murder_n and_o destroy_v man_n not_o to_o hire_v and_o force_v poor_a man_n to_o run_v upon_o and_o murder_v one_o another_o mere_o to_o satisfy_v the_o lust_n and_o ambition_n of_o great_a man_n they_o be_v oftentimes_o ignorant_a of_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o quarrel_n against_o the_o warrior_n be_v force_v to_o kill_v of_o their_o fellow_n christian_n who_o they_o never_o have_v evil_a will_n against_o and_o not_o have_v the_o least_o occasion_n of_o evil_a will_n or_o prejudice_n against_o those_o their_o fellow-christians_a who_o they_o thus_o kill_v among_o who_o not_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o perhaps_o ever_o see_v one_o another_o before_o yea_o be_v it_o not_o so_o that_o there_o be_v only_o a_o name_n and_o nothing_o of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o christian_n especial_o manifest_a in_o the_o clergy_n who_o pretend_v not_o only_o to_o be_v professor_n but_o preacher_n promoter_n and_o exhorter_n of_o other_o to_o christianity_n who_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v the_o great_a promoter_n and_o advancer_n of_o those_o war_n and_o by_o who_o upon_o all_o such_o occasion_n the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n be_v most_o horrible_o abuse_v profane_v and_o blaspheme_v while_o they_o dare_v pray_v to_o god_n promoter_n preacher_n the_o war_n promoter_n and_o thank_v he_o for_o the_o destruction_n of_o their_o brethren_n christian_n and_o that_o for_o and_o against_o according_a to_o the_o changeable_a will_n of_o their_o several_a prince_n yea_o so_o that_o some_o will_v join_v in_o their_o prayer_n with_o and_o for_o the_o prosperity_n of_o such_o prayer_n the_o priest_n confusion_n and_o instability_n in_o their_o prayer_n as_o their_o profession_n oblige_v they_o to_o believe_v to_o be_v heretical_a and_o antichristian_a and_o for_o the_o destruction_n of_o those_o who_o the_o same_o profession_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v good_a and_o orthodox_n christian_n thus_o the_o french_a both_o papist_n and_o protestant_n join_v in_o their_o prayer_n and_o rejoice_v for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o spanish_a papist_n and_o dutch_a protestant_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o danish_a swedish_n and_o german_a protestant_n as_o respective_o concern_v in_o this_o matter_n yea_o which_o be_v yet_o more_o strange_a if_o either_o constraint_n or_o interest_n do_v engage_v any_o prince_n or_o state_n to_o change_v his_o party_n while_o the_o same_o war_n and_o cause_n remain_v then_o will_v the_o clergy_n present_o accommodate_v their_o prayer_n to_o the_o case_n in_o pray_v for_o prosperity_n to_o those_o to_o who_o instant_o before_o they_o wish_v ruin_n and_o so_o on_o the_o contrary_a as_o in_o this_o present_a war_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o munster_n be_v manifest_a be_v there_o ever_o or_o can_v there_o be_v any_o more_o horrible_a profanation_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o pure_a name_n of_o god_n especial_o to_o be_v do_v by_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v worshipper_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n heathen_n worse_o than_o heathen_n this_n not_o only_o equal_n but_o far_o exceed_v the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o heathen_n for_o they_o only_o pray_v such_o god_n to_o their_o assistance_n as_o they_o fancy_v allow_v their_o ambition_n and_o account_v their_o war_a a_o virtue_n who_o they_o judge_v changeable_a like_o themselves_o and_o subject_a to_o such_o quarrel_n among_o themselves_o as_o they_o that_o be_v their_o worshipper_n but_o for_o those_o to_o be_v find_v in_o these_o thing_n who_o believe_v there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a god_n and_o have_v or_o at_o least_o profess_v to_o have_v such_o notion_n of_o his_o justice_n equity_n and_o mercy_n and_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o punish_v the_o transgressor_n of_o his_o law_n be_v so_o horrible_a and_o abominable_a as_o can_v sufficient_o be_v neither_o say_v nor_o write_v the_o ground_n then_o of_o all_o this_o be_v the_o want_n of_o true_a christianity_n because_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o be_v not_o beget_v war._n the_o ground_n of_o war._n nor_o bring_v forth_o in_o those_o call_a christian_n and_o therefore_o they_o bear_v not_o the_o image_n nor_o bring_v not_o forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o for_o albeit_o they_o have_v the_o name_n yet_o the_o nature_n they_o be_v stranger_n to_o the_o lamb_n nature_n be_v not_o in_o they_o but_o the_o doggish_a nature_n the_o wolvish_a nature_n that_o will_v still_o be_v quarrel_v and_o destroy_v the_o cunning_a serpentine_a subtle_a nature_n and_o the_o proud_a ambitious_a luciferian_a nature_n that_o set_v prince_n and_o state_n a_o work_n to_o contrive_v and_o foment_n war_n and_o engage_v people_n to_o fight_v together_o some_o for_o ambition_n and_o vain_a glory_n and_o some_o for_o covetousness_n and_o hope_n of_o gain_n and_o the_o same_o cause_n do_v move_v the_o clergy_n to_o concur_v with_o their_o share_n in_o make_v their_o prayer_n turn_v and_o twine_n twine_v the_o clergy_n prayer_n turn_v and_o twine_v and_o so_o all_o be_v here_o out_o from_o the_o state_n of_o true_a christianity_n and_o as_o they_o keep_v the_o name_n of_o be_v christian_n so_o also_o upon_o the_o same_o pretext_n each_o will_v pretend_v to_o be_v for_o peace_n while_o their_o fruit_n manifest_o declare_v the_o contrary_a and_o how_o have_v and_o do_v experience_n daily_o discover_v this_o deceit_n for_o how_o be_v peace_n bring_v about_o be_v it_o not_o when_o the_o weak_a be_v force_v to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o strong_a without_o respect_n to_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o cause_n be_v it_o not_o just_o so_o as_o among_o the_o wild_a and_o devour_a beast_n who_o when_o they_o fight_v together_o the_o weak_a be_v force_v to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o strong_a and_o so_o desist_v until_o another_o occasion_n offer_v so_o who_o be_v find_v weak_a who_o be_v least_o capable_a to_o hold_v out_o they_o must_v bear_v the_o inconveniency_n and_o he_o get_v the_o most_o advantage_n however_o frivolous_a yea_o unjust_a his_o pretence_n be_v who_o be_v most_o able_a to_o vindicate_v his_o claim_n and_o preserve_v it_o not_o by_o equity_n but_o force_n of_o arm_n so_o that_o the_o peace-contriver_n rule_n be_v not_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o cause_n but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o party_n be_v not_o this_o know_v and_o manifest_a in_o many_o if_o not_o most_o of_o the_o pacification_n that_o have_v be_v make_v in_o christendom_n it_o be_v therefore_o in_o my_o heart_n in_o the_o name_n and_o behalf_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o warn_v you_o to_o consider_v of_o those_o thing_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o unwilling_a to_o hear_v one_o that_o appear_v among_o you_o for_o the_o interest_n of_o christ_n his_o king_n and_o master_n not_o as_o it_o thereby_o he_o deny_v the_o just_a authority_n of_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o subjection_n himself_o owe_v to_o his_o lawful_a prince_n and_o superior_a affirm_v which_o calumny_n some_o have_v be_v apt_a to_o throw_v upon_o we_o by_o reason_n of_o some_o in_o those_o country_n that_o have_v so_o affirm_v or_o be_v any_o way_n incline_v to_o favour_v the_o dream_n of_o such_o as_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o cry_v up_o king_n jesus_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n either_o deny_v or_o seek_v to_o overturn_v all_o civil_a government_n nay_o not_o at_o all_o but_o i_o be_o one_o who_o do_v reverence_n and_o honour_n magistracy_n and_o acknowledge_v subjection_n due_a unto_o they_o by_o their_o respective_a people_n in_o all_o thing_n just_a and_o lawful_a know_v that_o magistracy_n be_v a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n 13.1.4_o god_n rom._n 13.1.4_o and_o that_o magistrate_n be_v his_o minister_n who_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a yet_o nevertheless_o i_o judge_v it_o no_o prejudice_n to_o magistracy_n nor_o injury_n to_o any_o for_o one_o that_o be_v call_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o appear_v for_o he_o in_o this_o affair_n for_o he_o be_v not_o a_o little_a concern_v as_o by_o all_o their_o confession_n
bring_v about_o the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n but_o this_o can_v be_v accomplish_v in_o you_o until_o you_o have_v first_o believe_v in_o the_o light_n of_o jesus_n christ_n wherewithal_o you_o as_o well_o as_o all_o man_n be_v enlighten_v and_o which_o be_v give_v you_o as_o a_o sufficient_a guide_n and_o leader_n to_o lead_v out_o of_o darkness_n to_o lead_v out_o strife_n to_o lead_v out_o of_o the_o lust_n 4.1_o jam._n 4.1_o from_o which_o the_o war_n come_v unto_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n which_o lead_v not_o to_o destroy_v but_o to_o love_n and_o forgive_v enemy_n it_o be_v the_o mind_v of_o this_o and_o be_v lead_v and_o guide_v by_o it_o that_o only_o can_v fit_v you_o for_o so_o great_a and_o good_a a_o work_n for_o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o father_n love_n to_o mankind_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n 2.32_o isa._n 49.6_o luc._n 2.32_o even_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v give_v for_o a_o light_n to_o enlighten_v the_o gentile_n and_o for_o his_o salvation_n unto_o the_o end_v of_o the_o earth_n so_o it_o be_v by_o turn_v to_o this_o and_o follow_v it_o and_o obey_v it_o in_o which_o be_v sufficiency_n and_o which_o give_v power_n to_o the_o receiver_n of_o it_o to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o christianity_n can_v be_v bring_v forth_o and_o restore_v and_o by_o which_o king_n and_o prince_n ruler_n and_o people_n may_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o lust_n envy_n warring_n and_o strife_n to_o true_a peace_n with_o god_n and_o one_o with_o another_o and_o therefore_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o mischief_n that_o be_v in_o christendom_n be_v because_o this_o light_n have_v not_o be_v mind_v nor_o regard_v in_o the_o heart_n but_o have_v be_v hate_v and_o overlook_v as_o a_o low_a and_o insufficient_a thing_n and_o therefore_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o kingdom_n this_o gift_n of_o the_o father_n love_n this_o little_a leaven_n this_o pearl_n of_o great_a prize_n and_o this_o talon_n be_v hide_v in_o the_o ground_n condemn_v and_o despise_a and_o the_o world_n and_o worldly_a mind_n be_v set_v over_o it_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o preach_a and_o pray_v and_o profess_v of_o christ_n in_o word_n that_o have_v be_v only_o one_o outward_a show_n and_o appearance_n by_o which_o man_n may_v the_o more_o easy_o be_v deceive_v and_o live_v more_o secure_o in_o their_o wickedness_n the_o innocent_a life_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v know_v and_o all_o christendom_n have_v bring_v forth_o bitter_a and_o sour_a grape_n under_o all_o their_o talk_n and_o form_n of_o worship_n and_o not_o the_o sweet_a and_o peaceable_a fruit_n of_o righteousness_n which_o can_v never_o be_v bring_v until_o all_o come_v to_o he_o to_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o conscience_n to_o follow_v and_o obey_v it_o and_o acknowledge_v it_o peace_n the_o light_n of_o christ_n lead_v to_o life_n and_o to_o truth_n and_o peace_n as_o that_o which_o be_v give_v they_o of_o god_n and_o sufficient_a to_o lead_v they_o to_o life_n and_o salvation_n for_o as_o this_o be_v thus_o receive_v and_o entertain_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v beget_v and_o bring_v forth_o in_o people_n and_o then_o the_o contrary_a nature_n in_o which_o the_o enmity_n and_o strife_n be_v will_v die_v and_o pass_v away_o and_o so_o truth_n and_o peace_n will_v come_v to_o be_v settle_v and_o firm_o establish_v and_o for_o this_o end_v the_o lord_n god_n almighty_n be_v arisen_a and_o arise_v in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o glory_n who_o out_o of_o his_o infinite_a compassion_n have_v regard_n to_o the_o present_a distract_a and_o desolate_a condition_n of_o christendom_n as_o see_v they_o stranger_n to_o his_o life_n and_o power_n and_o lead_v and_o guide_v at_o will_n to_o the_o utter_a ruin_n and_o destruction_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n by_o the_o adversary_n of_o mankind_n true_a happiness_n that_o he_o may_v reveal_v the_o light_n of_o his_o truth_n even_o of_o true_a christianity_n to_o those_o who_o have_v the_o name_n only_o have_v turn_v many_o who_o be_v stranger_n and_o enemy_n thereunto_o in_o their_o mind_n by_o wicked_a work_n to_o this_o precious_a light_n by_o which_o judgement_n have_v be_v lay_v to_o the_o line_n 12.20_o esa._n 28.17_o mat._n 12.20_o and_o righteousness_n to_o the_o plummet_n in_o they_o and_o the_o evil_a work_n and_o nature_n in_o they_o have_v be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v and_o they_o have_v willing_o abide_v under_o it_o until_o it_o have_v be_v bring_v forth_o to_o victory_n in_o they_o and_o many_o of_o they_o who_o have_v be_v wise_a according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n have_v learned_a to_o lay_v it_o down_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o jesus_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v from_o he_o of_o his_o pure_a and_o heavenly_a wisdom_n be_v content_v in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o by_o the_o world_n to_o be_v account_v fool_n and_o also_o many_o of_o they_o who_o be_v fighter_n and_o even_o renown_a for_o their_o skill_n and_o valour_n in_o warring_n have_v come_v by_o the_o influence_n of_o this_o pure_a light_n to_o beat_v their_o sword_n in_o ploughshare_n 2.4_o esa._n 2.4_o and_o their_o spear_n in_o pruning-hook_n and_o not_o learn_v carnal_a war_n any_o more_o be_v redeem_a from_o the_o lust_n from_o which_o the_o fight_a come_v and_o there_o be_v thousand_o who_o god_n have_v bring_v here_o already_o who_o see_v to_o the_o end_n of_o all_o contention_n and_o strife_n and_o that_o for_o which_o the_o world_n contend_v and_o albeit_o the_o devil_n be_v angry_a at_o they_o choose_a the_o rage_n of_o the_o devil_n against_o the_o lord_n choose_a and_o rage_n against_o they_o in_o the_o mere_a nominal_a and_o literal_a christian_n because_o he_o know_v they_o strike_v at_o the_o very_a root_n and_o foundation_n of_o his_o kingdom_n in_o man_n heart_n and_o therefore_o he_o prevail_v in_o his_o follower_n to_o wit_n in_o these_o literal_a nominal_a christian_n to_o persecute_v kill_v beat_n banish_v and_o imprison_v and_o many_o way_n vex_v they_o yet_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v they_o to_o be_v a_o first_o fruit_n of_o that_o glorious_a work_n which_o he_o be_v bring_v about_o in_o the_o nation_n therefore_o they_o hitherto_o have_v notwithstanding_o of_o all_o that_o opposition_n and_o yet_o shall_v prosper_v by_o a_o patient_n endure_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n they_o do_v and_o shall_v overcome_v and_o therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v so_o much_o tend_v to_o the_o good_a and_o universal_a peace_n of_o christendom_n than_o for_o all_o and_o every_o one_o to_o mind_v this_o gift_n of_o god_n in_o themselves_o and_o not_o only_o to_o suffer_v but_o to_o rejoice_v at_o the_o preach_a and_o promulgate_a of_o the_o universality_n of_o this_o glorious_a light_n whereunto_o god_n be_v now_o call_v many_o for_o as_o the_o resist_a and_o slay_v of_o this_o in_o themselves_o as_o well_o as_o in_o those_o who_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o declare_v it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o mischief_n that_o christendom_n labour_v under_o so_o also_o it_o be_v be_v receive_v and_o take_a place_n will_v remove_v and_o do_v it_o away_o be_v not_o therefore_o easy_o engage_v by_o the_o enemy_n to_o slight_v and_o reject_v those_o thing_n as_o foolish_a and_o weak_a and_o too_o low_a for_o you_o to_o consider_v or_o give_v place_n unto_o for_o thereby_o the_o enemy_n always_o labour_v to_o vail_v and_o darken_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n and_o hinder_v it_o from_o be_v receive_v by_o men._n 18.40_o 1_o king_n 2.8_o luc._n 21.2_o mat._n 27.20_o job_n 18.40_o thus_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n despise_v the_o counsel_n of_o micah_n at_o the_o instigation_n of_o his_o mock_v prophet_n but_o remember_v that_o you_o profess_v to_o be_v follower_n of_o jesus_n who_o be_v load_v with_o many_o reproach_n account_v a_o disturber_n and_o to_o who_o barrabas_n a_o murderer_n be_v prefer_v by_o the_o counsel_n and_o advice_n of_o the_o wise_a rabbi_n and_o great_a professor_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o remember_v that_o you_o profess_v yourselves_o to_o be_v owner_n of_o that_o gospel_n who_o first_n and_o chief_a minister_n and_o preacher_n be_v account_v foolish_a and_o illiterate_a man_n 7._o act._n 2_o 7._o ch_z 4_o 13._o ch_z 17_o 18_o 19_o 20._o ch_z 21_o 28._o ch_z 24_o 5_o 6._o ch_z 25_o 7._o mover_n of_o sedition_n idle_a babbler_n and_o turner_n of_o the_o world_n upside_o down_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o easy_o fright_v by_o these_o and_o such_o like_a report_n and_o reproach_n from_o hear_v those_o who_o god_n have_v call_v and_o choose_v that_o in_o and_o among_o they_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v and_o by_o they_o may_v restore_v that_o in_o reality_n in_o the_o so_o call_v christian_n
they_o once_o have_v in_o their_o foederal_n head_n according_a to_o his_o phrase_n and_o notion_n another_o of_o his_o allege_a mistake_v be_v that_o i_o say_v they_o affirm_v god_n do_v decree_n man_n shall_v not_o obey_v but_o whether_o these_o passage_n i_o cite_v out_o of_o their_o author_n do_v not_o make_v out_o this_o the_o reader_n may_v judge_v yea_o his_o confession_n do_v asscribe_v the_o withhold_a of_o mercy_n which_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o agree_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o reprobation_n so_o that_o all_o the_o fig-leaf-covering_n whereby_o this_o man_n will_v fain_o shelter_v this_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o their_o public_a confession_n of_o faith_n and_o positive_a sentence_n of_o their_o chief_a doctor_n be_v too_o short_a and_o narrow_a to_o hide_v the_o vgliness_n of_o it_o he_o confess_v the_o ancient_n say_v little_a of_o this_o before_o augustin_n i_o never_o so_o use_v their_o testimony_n as_o to_o build_v my_o faith_n upon_o it_o or_o to_o reject_v their_o doctrine_n mere_o for_o its_o dissent_n from_o they_o which_o he_o insinuate_v and_o yet_o to_o his_o own_o self-contradiction_n confess_v i_o say_v i_o will_v not_o much_o regard_n all_o that_o if_o it_o have_v any_o ground_n in_o scripture_n and_o he_o deny_v not_o his_o union_n with_o the_o dominican_n reformer_n j._n b._n reject_v the_o chief_a and_o first_o reformer_n and_o that_o he_o may_v show_v how_o little_a he_o care_v for_o good_a company_n he_o willing_o reject_v the_o chief_a and_o first_o reformer_n to_o wit_n the_o lutheran_n who_o according_a to_o his_o charity_n he_o deni_v so_o much_o as_o the_o name_n of_o reform_a protestant_n ¶_o 3._o pag._n 146._o n._n 16._o he_o come_v to_o prove_v that_o this_o their_o doctrine_n make_v not_o god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o he_o labour_v here_o like_o a_o man_n in_o a_o sweat_n and_o give_v so_o little_a of_o a_o direct_a answer_n as_o scarce_o deserve_v any_o reply_n such_o as_o amount_n to_o this_o be_v by_o way_n of_o retortion_n that_o if_o i_o acknowledge_v god_n foresee_v sin_n permit_v it_o and_o may_v have_v hinder_v it_o i_o will_v make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n too_o but_o i_o deny_v the_o parity_n and_o he_o have_v forget_v to_o prove_v it_o his_o other_o answer_n be_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o cicero_n and_o plautus_n who_o oppose_v author_n to_o dissuasor_fw-la and_o then_o he_o ask_v whether_o they_o say_v god_n persuade_v any_o man_n to_o sin_n kill_v zanchy_n erroneous_a doctrine_n that_o god_n move_v the_o thief_n to_o kill_v but_o zanchius_n one_o of_o their_o doctor_n say_v he_o move_v the_o thief_n to_o kill_v and_o that_o he_o sin_v god_n put_v he_o yea_o force_v he_o to_o it_o and_o sure_o that_o be_v more_o than_o persuade_v but_o the_o poor_a man_n must_v be_v at_o a_o low_a ebb_n when_o he_o be_v force_v to_o go_v to_o the_o heathen_n of_o who_o he_o have_v express_v he_o have_v so_o mean_a thought_n for_o a_o shelter_n to_o his_o doctrine_n at_o last_o to_o come_v off_o with_o some_o seem_a credit_n he_o desire_v i_o to_o confute_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 9.11_o 12_o 13._o because_o that_o he_o think_v from_o that_o as_o much_o as_o from_o their_o doctrine_n this_o charge_n may_v be_v infer_v but_o here_o he_o do_v only_o only_o beg_v the_o question_n he_o and_o i_o do_v both_o agree_v that_o the_o apostle_n make_v not_o god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o it_o do_v not_o thence_o follow_v that_o their_o doctrine_n do_v not_o infer_v it_o since_o from_o the_o positive_a say_v of_o their_o doctor_n and_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o it_o be_v manifest_a as_o be_v more_o large_o show_v in_o my_o apology_n and_o this_o remain_v yet_o by_o he_o to_o be_v remove_v for_o his_o desire_v i_o to_o refute_v the_o apostle_n be_v no_o more_o answer_n than_o if_o to_o all_o his_o argument_n in_o his_o book_n i_o shall_v only_o say_v confute_v the_o scripture_n which_o contain_v our_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o dispute_v no_o more_o against_o we_o until_o thou_o first_o do_v that_o will_v he_o reckon_v this_o sufficient_a as_o for_o their_o misapprehension_n of_o rom._n 9_o he_o may_v find_v they_o refute_v in_o many_o author_n that_o have_v write_v upon_o that_o subject_a particular_o in_o the_o examination_n of_o west_n confess_v of_o faith_n chap._n 3._o to_o which_o i_o refer_v he_o to_o the_o citation_n i_o give_v he_o of_o their_o author_n make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n he_o say_v if_o they_o give_v more_o ground_n than_o the_o very_a expression_n of_o scripture_n he_o will_v not_o own_v they_o and_o what_o then_o the_o consequence_n be_v but_o very_o small_a whether_o he_o will_v or_o not_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o that_o i_o have_v show_v the_o absurdity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o even_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o chief_a doctor_n make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n unless_o he_o will_v reply_v all_o this_o be_v nothing_o because_o i_o j._n b._n will_v not_o own_v they_o and_o if_o to_o say_v he_o that_o force_v another_o to_o do_v a_o thing_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o author_n of_o it_o who_o without_o contradict_v their_o own_o reason_n can_v deny_v they_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n as_o for_o the_o many_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n bring_v by_o he_o i_o own_v they_o and_o both_o agree_v they_o make_v not_o god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o that_o the_o say_v of_o their_o divine_n do_v it_o what_o be_v above_o say_v do_v evince_n pag._n 149._o he_o come_v but_o as_o may_v be_v observe_v god_n calvinist_n distinction_n between_o the_o reveal_v and_o secret_a will_n of_o god_n unwilling_o to_o vindicate_v the_o twofold_n will_v they_o ascribe_v to_o god_n the_o one_o reveal_v by_o which_o he_o command_v man_n to_o repent_v and_o the_o other_o secret_a and_o quite_o contrary_a how_o he_o be_v pain_v here_o the_o reader_n may_v observe_v by_o his_o if_n and_o and_o be_v think_v to_o turn_v it_o by_o without_o any_o direct_a answer_n the_o sum_n of_o what_o he_o say_v resolve_v in_o this_o that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o his_o command_n but_o what_o if_o that_o shall_v be_v grant_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o be_v quite_o contrary_a and_o that_o in_o respect_n to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o subject_a so_o that_o when_o a_o man_n be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n by_o his_o secret_a purpose_n he_o be_v force_v to_o do_v the_o quite_o contrary_a pag._n 150._o n._n 19_o he_o come_v to_o answer_v my_o say_v that_o their_o affirm_v man_n sin_v willing_o will_v not_o avail_v because_o according_a to_o they_o his_o propensity_n of_o inclination_n to_o sin_n be_v necessary_o impose_v upon_o he_o by_o god_n to_o this_o instead_o of_o answer_n he_o refer_v i_o to_o rom._n 9_o of_o which_o before_o and_o for_o want_v of_o reason_n he_o fall_v a_o rail_a call_v i_o a_o proud_a quaker_n say_v i_o agent_n the_o devil_n cause_n but_o whether_o that_o be_v to_o remove_v my_o objection_n or_o vindicate_v their_o doctrine_n the_o reader_n may_v judge_v pag._n 151._o n._n 20._o in_o answer_n to_o my_o show_v their_o doctrine_n be_v injurious_a to_o god_n because_o it_o make_v he_o delight_v in_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n contrary_a to_o ezek._n 33.11_o 1_o tim._n 2.3_o 2_o pet._n 3.9_o he_o say_v nothing_o direct_o but_o will_v be_v retort_a that_o if_o i_o prove_v any_o thing_n from_o this_o than_o i_o must_v say_v that_o god_n do_v absolute_o decree_n overturn_v j._n b_n silly_a shift_n and_o evasion_n overturn_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v but_o i_o deny_v this_o consequence_n albeit_o it_o be_v injurious_a to_o god_n to_o say_v he_o decree_v that_o which_o he_o declare_v to_o take_v no_o delight_n in_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v injurious_a to_o he_o to_o say_v he_o permit_v what_o he_o delight_v not_o in_o for_o on_o all_o hand_n it_o be_v confess_v he_o permit_v sin_n and_o yet_o on_o no_o hand_n that_o he_o delight_v in_o sin_n so_o that_o this_o injuriousness_n of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o god_n be_v no_o way_n remove_v by_o he_o albeit_o he_o will_v fain_o be_v mince_v and_o cover_v it_o say_v they_o do_v not_o say_v that_o god_n purpose_n to_o punish_v any_o not_o for_o their_o sin_n but_o mere_o to_o satisfy_v his_o own_o pleasure_n but_o such_o silly_a shift_n must_v only_o satisfy_v blind_a men._n do_v not_o they_o say_v god_n purpose_v to_o damn_v many_o to_o eternal_a torment_n and_o that_o sin_n be_v no_o way_n the_o cause_n of_o this_o purpose_n and_o will_v he_o say_v to_o be_v eternal_o torment_v be_v no_o punishment_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o purpose_n to_o punish_v man_n and_o not_o
printer_n the_o figure_n may_v be_v misplace_v and_o so_o miss_v true_o they_o must_v be_v very_o happy_a that_o can_v secure_v themselves_o from_o this_o hazard_n he_o have_v not_o be_v so_o happy_a who_o deny_v the_o word_n to_o be_v in_o a_o place_n where_o the_o know_v of_o it_o depend_v not_o upon_o the_o diligence_n of_o other_o but_o of_o his_o own_o lock_v to_o it_o as_o i_o have_v just_a now_o show_v pag._n 315._o to_o prove_v that_o justify_v be_v not_o take_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n to_o the_o roman_n corinthian_n galatian_n for_o make_v just_o as_o i_o affirm_v in_o the_o passage_n cite_v by_o i_o he_o say_v to_o take_v it_o so_o will_v make_v the_o apostle_n contradict_v himself_o but_o this_o he_o affirm_v upon_o the_o mere_a supposition_n that_o the_o apostle_n with_o he_o exclude_v all_o work_n from_o justification_n which_o be_v but_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n as_o will_v after_o appear_v what_o he_o add_v here_o and_o in_o the_o follow_a page_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o citation_n i_o bring_v out_o of_o divers_a protestant_a author_n i_o need_v not_o trouble_v the_o reader_n with_o a_o reply_n to_o it_o because_o he_o turn_v by_o the_o most_o material_a of_o they_o as_o not_o have_v the_o author_n by_o he_o to_o examine_v they_o other_o he_o positive_o reject_v as_o not_o agree_v with_o they_o as_o forbes_n and_o baxter_n and_o at_o last_o insinuate_v that_o the_o trial_n be_v not_o to_o be_v by_o humane_a testimony_n for_o such_o he_o account_v all_o the_o write_n of_o his_o brethren_n whereunto_o i_o do_v very_o well_o agree_v only_o i_o bring_v some_o of_o his_o own_o folk_n not_o as_o if_o i_o need_v they_o to_o confirm_v i_o in_o my_o opinion_n but_o as_o have_v weight_n with_o those_o among_o who_o they_o be_v esteem_v doctor_n in_o this_o page_n answer_v what_o i_o urge_v from_o rom._n 8.30_o show_v how_o in_o that_o golden_a chain_n sanctification_n must_v be_v exclude_v or_o justification_n must_v be_v take_v in_o its_o proper_a sense_n he_o say_v that_o sanctification_n be_v comprehend_v under_o vocation_n if_o this_o be_v true_a which_o he_o assert_n than_o he_o give_v again_o away_o his_o cause_n for_o than_o no_o man_n be_v soon_o call_v than_o he_o be_v sanctify_v and_o since_o he_o will_v not_o say_v see_v he_o disclaim_v to_o be_v a_o antinomian_a that_o any_o man_n be_v justify_v before_o he_o be_v call_v it_o follow_v then_o necessary_o that_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v sanctify_v no_o man_n be_v justife_v before_o he_o be_v sanctify_v before_o he_o be_v sanctify_v and_o then_o to_o what_o purpose_n have_v he_o be_v fight_v and_o wrestle_v all_o this_o while_n pag._n 316._o n._n 33._o he_o acccuse_v i_o of_o vnparalleled_a falsehood_n impudence_n and_o boldness_n for_o say_v that_o i_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o by_o justification_n aught_o to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v make_v real_o just_o whereas_o i_o undertake_v only_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n may_v be_v so_o understand_v without_o absurdity_n add_v i_o wonderful_o conclude_v a_o mus_fw-la be_v from_o a_o may_n be_v etc._n etc._n but_o the_o best_a be_v his_o great_a charge_n be_v build_v either_o upon_o forge_a calumny_n or_o his_o own_o pitiful_a mistake_v i_o never_o conclude_v by_o justification_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v make_v real_o just_o only_o upon_o that_o which_o i_o say_v from_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n nor_o by_o justification_n there_o do_v i_o understand_v mere_o the_o word_n but_o i_o conclude_v from_o all_o my_o scripture-argument_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o my_o follow_a word_n manifest_a where_o i_o say_v we_o know_v it_o from_o sensible_a experience_n but_o he_o may_v be_v sure_a it_o be_v not_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n we_o know_v so_o and_o if_o thence_o he_o urge_v that_o this_o fall_v not_o under_o the_o inward_a sensation_n of_o the_o soul_n he_o but_o fight_v with_o his_o own_o mistake_n for_o that_o the_o real_a justification_n of_o the_o saint_n fall_v under_o the_o inward_a sensation_n of_o the_o soul_n i_o think_v no_o man_n of_o sense_n will_v deny_v for_o christ_n be_v form_v in_o the_o mind_n where_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v reveal_v inward_o and_o that_o give_v a_o sense_n of_o justification_n albeit_o he_o seem_v to_o wonder_v at_o it_o ask_v what_o scripture_n speak_v so_o he_o may_v read_v gal._n 1.16_o whether_o be_v not_o the_o apostle_n here_o justify_v and_o under_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o he_o be_v angry_a p._n 317._o that_o i_o call_v the_o life_n of_o christ_n a_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n but_o will_v he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o outward_a and_o carnal_a thing_n thing_n the_o life_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n but_o what_o think_v he_o of_o 2_o cor._n 4.10_o 11_o he_o confess_v this_o life_n of_o christ_n support_v and_o carry_v the_o persecute_a apostle_n through_o many_o misery_n and_o death_n will_v he_o say_v then_o it_o be_v not_o a_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n that_o carry_v they_o through_o these_o trial_n but_o he_o add_v but_o who_o except_o a_o quaker_n can_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o this_o life_n i_o answer_v all_z except_o such_o absurd_a man_n as_o will_v deny_v that_o where_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v save_v by_o a_o thing_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o rom._n 5.10_o tit._n 3.5_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v save_v by_o regeneration_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n say_v not_o that_o this_o be_v the_o formal_a objective_a cause_n of_o justification_n these_o be_v word_n the_o apostle_n use_v not_o at_o all_o and_o therefore_o no_o wonder_n there_o be_v no_o word_n of_o it_o here_o he_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o be_v absurd_a for_o i_o to_o think_v that_o reprobation_n be_v non-justification_n but_o i_o will_v know_v of_o he_o if_o there_o be_v any_o reprobate_n who_o be_v justify_v that_o the_o mark_n and_o evidence_n be_v not_o always_o take_v from_o the_o immediate_a near_o and_o formal_a cause_n i_o confess_v but_o that_o therefore_o the_o not_o have_v christ_n reveal_v in_o the_o soul_n be_v only_o a_o sign_n and_o no_o cause_n of_o reprobation_n remain_v for_o he_o to_o prove_v reprobation_n the_o cause_n reprobation_n wickedness_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o reprobation_n will_v he_o therefore_o affirm_v it_o be_v not_o the_o immediate_a nor_o formal_a cause_n of_o it_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n he_o deni_v p._n 319._o that_o we_o must_v lean_v to_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v col._n 1.27_o 28._o christ_n within_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n his_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o apostle_n say_v phil._n 1.28_o and_o in_o nothing_o terrify_v by_o your_o adversary_n which_o be_v to_o you_o a_o evident_a token_n of_o salvation_n ask_v must_v we_o also_o lean_a to_o that_o in_o justification_n but_o will_v he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o that_o which_o be_v only_o a_o token_n and_o christ_n within_o if_o there_o be_v his_o reason_n conclude_v nothing_o ¶_o 6._o last_o he_o come_v to_o answer_v justification_n the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n to_o justification_n what_o i_o say_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n to_o justification_n and_o what_o i_o urge_v from_o isai_n 2._o he_o confess_v that_o good_a work_n be_v a_o instrumental_a cause_n which_o concession_n do_v prove_v all_o i_o affirm_v if_o they_o be_v a_o instrumental_a cause_n they_o must_v be_v a_o cause_n sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la and_o necessary_a since_o the_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o a_o thing_n must_v be_v necessary_a towards_o its_o be_v what!_o though_o abraham_n be_v justify_v before_o he_o offer_v up_o his_o son_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v justify_v without_o work_n his_o absurdity_n as_o if_o it_o will_v thence_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v when_o he_o sleep_v or_o be_v not_o actual_o do_v some_o work_n look_v like_a the_o objection_n of_o a_o man_n sleep_v who_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v than_o of_o one_o awake_v for_o by_o the_o same_o way_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o necessary_a since_o man_n do_v no_o more_o actual_o believe_v than_o do_v good_a work_n when_o they_o be_v sleep_v my_o argument_n deduce_v from_o heb._n 12.14_o matth._n 7.21_o john_n 13.17_o 1_o cor._n 7.19_o revel_v 22.14_o he_o say_v prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o work_n unto_o final_a salvation_n but_o not_o to_o justification_n and_o if_o it_o do_v so_o it_o do_v the_o business_n unless_o he_o will_v say_v that_o full_a and_o perfect_a justification_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n my_o answer_n to_o their_o first_o objection_n he_o observe_v but_o reply_v not_o to_o the_o second_o answer_v what_o
their_o fellow-servant_n the_o hazzard_n of_o which_o state_n thou_o know_v and_o many_o will_v feel_v when_o the_o lord_n rise_v up_o to_o prey_n for_o his_o eye_n be_v upon_o the_o righteous_a and_o his_o ear_n be_v open_a to_o their_o cry_n though_o now_o he_o be_v try_v the_o child_n of_o man_n and_o permit_v some_o to_o suffer_v and_o other_o to_o do_v hard_a thing_n yet_o a_o hope_n live_v in_o i_o the_o time_n approach_v wherein_o the_o lord_n will_v more_o manifest_o appear_v to_o the_o joy_n and_o refreshment_n of_o the_o single_a in_o heart_n who_o suffer_v with_o he_o and_o patient_o wait_v for_o he_o and_o for_o the_o shame_n and_o utter_v overthrow_n of_o his_o malicious_a opposer_n and_o so_o one_o of_o the_o particular_n i_o will_v lay_v before_o thou_o be_v a_o desire_n lord_n search_v thy_o own_o heart_n in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o lord_n thou_o will_v yet_o in_o the_o lord_n light_n search_v thy_o own_o heart_n more_o till_o thou_o find_v out_o what_o secret_a affinity_n have_v remain_v with_o thou_o to_o any_o of_o the_o lord_n enemy_n in_o thy_o own_o heart_n for_o if_o all_o be_v bring_v under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n inward_o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v thy_o outward_a opposition_n to_o the_o lord_n work_n can_v not_o long_o stand_v the_o outward_a be_v a_o true_a figure_n of_o the_o inward_a and_o i_o know_v by_o true_a experience_n all_o that_o despite_n and_o disdainful_a undervalue_v epithet_n thou_o squeeze_v up_o thy_o engine_n to_o coin_n which_o one_o may_v feel_v answer_v not_o full_o thy_o own_o satisfaction_n for_o bespatter_v and_o load_v that_o people_n and_o their_o principle_n be_v but_o alas_o a_o mirrour-glass_n set_v up_o to_o represent_v the_o low_a mean_a rabbi_n the_o mean_a appearance_n of_o christ_n despise_v by_o the_o learned_a rabbi_n unworthy_a esteem_n thou_o bear_v to_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n in_o its_o inward_a appearance_n in_o thou_o as_o a_o reprover_n for_o whosoever_o turn_v universal_o at_o the_o reproof_n of_o god_n light_n in_o the_o conscience_n shall_v witness_v the_o pour_v forth_o of_o his_o spirit_n in_o large_a manifestation_n according_a to_o prov._n 1.23_o but_o that_o spirit_n speak_v in_o thou_o of_o which_o isaiah_n prophesy_v isa._n 53.2_o 3_o etc._n etc._n concern_v the_o outward_a appearance_n of_o the_o same_o christ_n our_o head_n and_o the_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n who_o suffering_n death_n resurrection_n and_o glory_n we_o dear_o own_o and_o wait_v from_o day_n to_o day_n more_o to_o feel_v the_o precious_a virtue_n thereof_o although_o he_o then_o be_v and_o now_o be_v reject_v and_o despise_v of_o man_n who_o hide_v as_o it_o be_v their_o face_n from_o he_o because_o his_o outward_a appearance_n be_v as_o a_o root_n out_o of_o a_o dry_a ground_n in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o form_n nor_o comeliness_n nor_o beauty_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v desire_v by_o that_o mind_n which_o be_v look_v after_o great_a thing_n add_v expect_v much_o outward_a glory_n and_o advantage_n and_o so_o christ_n appearance_n be_v mistake_v by_o the_o learned_a rabbi_n in_o that_o day_n notwithstanding_o they_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n testimony_n and_o be_v not_o want_v in_o read_v the_o letter_n as_o other_o now_o for_o as_o it_o be_v then_o it_o be_v now_o he_o be_v and_o be_v mistake_v by_o all_o who_o seek_v any_o thing_n to_o glory_n in_o save_o the_o cross_n of_o christ._n for_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n have_v and_o do_v lift_v fall_v man_n above_o the_o innocent_a seed_n in_o themselves_o only_o through_o which_o they_o can_v see_v the_o invisible_a glory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o find_v a_o abundant_a entrance_n unto_o the_o righteousness_n peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereof_o it_o consist_v wherefore_o take_v heed_n of_o be_v lift_v up_o above_o the_o seed_n light_n life_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o thou_o and_o so_o thou_o will_v see_v matter_n to_o work_n out_o thy_o salvation_n in_o fear_n and_o tremble_v and_o will_v not_o sit_v down_o upon_o former_a attainment_n or_o experience_n when_o the_o life_n be_v go_v strife_n the_o great_a danger_n of_o sin_n at_o the_o water_n of_o strife_n another_o thing_n i_o will_v put_v thou_o in_o remembrance_n of_o in_o these_o present_a time_n be_v the_o great_a danger_n of_o sin_v at_o the_o water_n of_o strife_n whereof_o moses_n his_o example_n may_v be_v a_o stand_a monument_n to_o all_o generation_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v he_o be_v the_o meek_a man_n upon_o the_o earth_n yet_o at_o the_o water_n of_o strife_n he_o speak_v unadvised_o with_o his_o lip_n because_o of_o which_o he_o be_v debar_v from_o enter_v into_o the_o promise_a rest._n and_o be_v there_o not_o some_o live_n at_o this_o day_n who_o with_o sorrow_n of_o heart_n have_v observe_v the_o heat_n and_o bitterness_n of_o spirit_n that_o have_v arisen_a because_o difference_n and_o controversy_n concern_v religion_n have_v eat_v out_o the_o life_n of_o that_o love_n and_o tenderness_n that_o be_v with_o many_o and_o have_v hurt_v the_o green_a thing_n in_o themselves_o and_o one_o another_o have_v bring_v on_o death_n darkness_n dryness_n and_o sensible_a wither_v and_o can_v choose_v but_o so_o to_o do_v see_v bitterness_n of_o spirit_n and_o prejudice_n and_o such_o like_a frames_n in_o man_n or_o woman_n separate_v from_o god_n love_n dwell_v in_o love_n while_o there_o any_o one_o abide_v for_o god_n be_v love_n and_o he_o that_o dwell_v in_o god_n dwell_v in_o love_n and_o christ_n have_v say_v unless_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o you_o can_v bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n so_o not_o abide_v in_o that_o pure_a love_n to_o god_n and_o his_o image_n in_o his_o child_n have_v cause_v many_o fall_n short_a and_o have_v let_v their_o progress_n and_o make_v many_o lose_a sight_n of_o their_o way_n and_o the_o guide_n of_o their_o youth_n and_o so_o they_o have_v not_o follow_v the_o lord_n full_o nor_o follow_v he_o in_o the_o regeneration_n renew_v according_a to_o the_o increase_n of_o light_n and_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o manifestation_n whereby_o they_o shall_v know_v even_o in_o this_o life_n a_o be_v change_v from_o glory_n to_o glory_n as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n thou_o mention_v in_o thy_o postscript_n to_o j._n b._n pag._n 557._o many_o who_o may_v remember_v with_o shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o face_n their_o laugh_a at_o and_o make_v light_n of_o the_o appearance_n of_o that_o prodigy_n and_o that_o it_o may_v cause_v some_o go_v groan_v to_o their_o grave_n be_v a_o evidence_n that_o you_o know_v not_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o time_n and_o what_o they_o call_v you_o to_o do_v to_o which_o i_o answer_v lightness_n and_o laugh_v among_o people_n that_o lie_v claim_v to_o religion_n be_v none_o of_o the_o least_o cause_n of_o mourn_a but_o i_o also_o believe_v if_o the_o appearance_n of_o quakerism_n so_o call_v have_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v look_v on_o ministry_n the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o downfall_n of_o a_o man-made_a ministry_n as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o down-fall_a of_o a_o mere_a man-made_a ministry_n in_o these_o nation_n it_o be_v like_a it_o will_v have_v move_v those_o who_o laugh_v most_o to_o have_v mourn_v most_o even_o then_o and_o babylon_n merchant_n will_v have_v cry_v alas_o alas_o but_o since_o now_o thou_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o space_n of_o a_o score_n of_o year_n at_o most_o thou_o see_v cause_n to_o mourn_v for_o that_o which_o you_o then_o laugh_v at_o i_o be_o very_o willing_a to_o admit_v of_o your_o own_o acknowledgement_n for_o a_o ground_n of_o hope_n that_o the_o single-hearted_n among_o the_o nonconformist_n may_v outlive_v all_o the_o clamour_n they_o be_v now_o make_v against_o we_o and_o in_o less_o than_o as_o many_o year_n more_o may_v work_v through_o the_o fog_n and_o mist_n that_o now_o darken_v their_o understanding_n concern_v the_o sign_n of_o this_o time_n and_o look_v back_o with_o shame_n and_o confusion_n on_o their_o great_a darkness_n that_o will_v have_v mourn_v for_o that_o which_o be_v matter_n of_o joy_n and_o this_o be_v no_o far-fetched_a consequence_n for_o you_o have_v then_o and_o now_o the_o same_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o much_o humane_a learning_n and_o sharpness_n and_o natural_a ability_n for_o a_o acute_a examen_fw-la and_o so_o it_o follow_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o contrary_n and_o may_v it_o not_o be_v without_o presumption_n conclude_v you_o need_v then_o and_o do_v now_o the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v immediate_a teach_n in_o your_o own_o heart_n without_o which_o you_o will_v not_o yet_o understand_v the_o sign_n of_o this_o time_n aright_o which_o if_o you_o do_v flesh._n the_o lord_n be_v stain_v
the_o worldly_a peace-contriver_n rule_v be_v not_o equity_n but_o the_o power_n of_o party_n 610_o 711_o 712_o pelagian_n 311._o how_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o 339_o 341_o 492._o see_v light_n of_o nature_n pelagius_n deem_v that_o no_o man_n get_v a_o evil_a seed_n from_o adam_n and_o ascribe_v all_o to_o the_o will_n and_o nature_n of_o man_n he_o say_v that_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o a_o state_n of_o not_o sin_v by_o his_o mere_a natural_a strength_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 398_o perfection_n concern_v perfection_n or_o freedom_n from_o sin_n 91_o 99_o 132_o 136_o 166_o 167._o perfection_n evict_v 28_o 37_o 620._o persecution_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n 523_o 529._o see_v magistrate_n violent_a persecution_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o religious_a principle_n rather_o confirm_v than_o drive_v the_o persecute_v from_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o principle_n 687._o the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n unite_v in_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o persecution_n even_o practise_v the_o same_o against_o one_o another_o 690._o press_v after_o and_o seek_v to_o establish_v a_o national_a church_n tend_v to_o promote_v persecution_n 691._o the_o principle_n of_o persecution_n preach_v up_o and_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 689._o severity_n see_v 865._o perseverance_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v lose_v through_o disobedience_n 388_o 401._o yet_o such_o a_o stability_n may_v in_o this_o life_n be_v attain_v from_o which_o there_o can_v be_v a_o total_a apostasy_n 380_o 398_o 400_o 405_o 406._o concern_v perseverance_n or_o fall_v from_o grace_n 136_o 138_o 167_o peter_n whether_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n 289._o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o aristotle_n logic_n 305._o there_o be_v of_o old_a divers_a opinion_n concern_v his_o second_o epistle_n 297._o pharaoh_n 778_o pharisees_n 475._o philosopher_n a_o heathen-philosopher_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n by_o a_o illiterate_a rustic_a 424._o a_o philosopher_n convert_v his_o testimony_n concern_v the_o old_a man_n word_n 644._o a_o philosopher_n trouble_v for_o be_v commend_v by_o a_o profligate_n person_n 672._o philosopher_n whence_o call_v 362._o philosophy_n 417_o 424_o physics_n ibid._n play_n whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v they_o 531_o 533_o 545_o 548._o 565_o polycarpus_n the_o disciple_n or_o john_n 289_o power_n the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v inward_o feel_v to_o give_v victory_n over_o sin_n in_o some_o serious_a inquirer_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o unite_n and_o agree_v unanimous_o to_o the_o universal_a preach_v up_o of_o this_o power_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n first_o and_o chief_a principle_n and_o most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o universal_a love_n of_o god_n 697_o pray_n to_o pray_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n 397_o 398._o concern_v the_o lord_n prayer_n 450._o to_o pray_v without_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o offend_v god_n 453._o concern_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o will_n in_o silence_n 458_o see_v worship_n prayer_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o people_n be_v in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n 422._o prayer_n perform_v without_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o acceptable_a to_o god_n 44_o 45._o mental_a prayer_n the_o cause_n and_o spring_n of_o vocal_a prayer_n 643._o be_v sometime_o of_o more_o force_n than_o vocal_a prayer_n 648_o all_o that_o be_v faithful_a who_o have_v no_o natural_a defect_n may_v pray_v vocal_o at_o time_n 645._o preacher_n see_v minister_n preach_v what_o it_o be_v term_v the_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n 426_o 431._o see_v worship_n it_o be_v a_o permanent_a institution_n 485._o it_o be_v learn_v as_o another_o trade_n 431._o no_n preach_v be_v profitable_a but_o that_o which_o come_v from_o the_o immediate_a teach_n of_o god_n spirit_n 28_o 861_o 868_o 871_o predestinate_v god_n have_v after_o a_o special_a manner_n predestinate_v some_o to_o salvation_n of_o who_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o some_o abuse_n be_v understand_v their_o objection_n be_v easy_o solve_v 341._o presbyterian_o scot_n presbyterian_o the_o severe_a of_o that_o sect_n they_o derive_v their_o pedigree_n from_o geneva_n but_o surpass_v it_o in_o zeal_n 678._o presbyterian_o compliance_n 758._o a_o presbyterian_a preacher_n prayer_n to_o the_o devil_n 708._o a_o twofold_a will_n in_o god_n vindicate_v by_o the_o presbyterian_o 777._o see_v 861_o 873_o 878_o priest_n under_o the_o law_n god_n speak_v immediate_o to_o the_o highpriest_n 277_o 286_o priest_n see_v minister_n of_o the_o law_n 408_o 409_o 421_o 442_o pride_n 885_o prince_n the_o court_n of_o prince_n the_o scene_n of_o great_a wickedness_n 708_o 564._o principle_n depart_v through_o unbelief_n from_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o a_o society_n impli_v self-ejection_n from_o be_v a_o member_n of_o that_o society_n whether_o in_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a matter_n 214._o prove_v by_o scripture_n ibid._n that_o those_o that_o abide_v faithful_a in_o the_o firm_a belief_n of_o those_o principle_n and_o doctrine_n upon_o which_o their_o society_n be_v outward_o ground_v have_v power_n to_o exclude_v those_o that_o separate_a from_o they_o by_o assert_v false_a and_o contradictory_n principle_n 215._o the_o doctrine_n and_o principle_n which_o be_v the_o outward_a bond_n and_o term_n of_o society_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o product_n of_o truth_n be_v power_n and_o virtue_n upon_o the_o heart_n 241._o a_o good_a principle_n be_v a_o ready_a way_n to_o lead_v people_n into_o good_a practice_n 27_o profession_n a_o outward_a profession_n be_v necessary_a that_o any_o be_v a_o member_n of_o a_o particular_a christian_a church_n 404_o prophecy_n and_o to_o prophesy_v what_o it_o signify_v 416_o 417._o of_o the_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v 439._o prophecy_n 277_o 750_o prophet_n some_o prophet_n do_v not_o miracle_n 416_o 417._o sam._n rutherford_n explain_v 1_o cor._n 14.30_o to_o be_v mean_v of_o pastor_n and_o not_o extraordinary_a prophet_n 104._o j._n calvin_n affirm_v that_o in_o his_o day_n god_n raise_v up_o prophet_n and_o evangelist_n 89._o concern_v prophet_n 604_o 645_o 667._o protestant_n the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n 289._o they_o be_v force_v ultimate_o to_o recur_v unto_o the_o immediate_a &_o inward_a revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 293._o what_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o execrable_a deed_n of_o those_o of_o munster_n and_o they_o 288_o 290._o they_o make_v philosophy_n the_o handmaid_n of_o divinity_n 305._o they_o affirm_v john_n huss_n prophesy_v of_o the_o reformation_n that_o be_v to_o be_v 309._o whether_o they_o do_v not_o throw_v themselves_o into_o many_o error_n while_o they_o be_v expect_v a_o great_a light_n 380._o they_o oppose_v the_o papist_n not_o without_o good_a cause_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n but_o they_o soon_o run_v into_o another_o extreme_a 365_o 366._o they_o say_v that_o the_o best_a work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v defile_v 370._o whether_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o papist_n in_o superstition_n and_o manner_n and_o what_o it_o be_v 405_o 406._o what_o they_o think_v of_o the_o call_v of_o a_o minister_n 409_o 416._o it_o be_v lamentable_a that_o they_o betake_v themselves_o to_o judas_n for_o a_o patron_n to_o their_o minister_n and_o ministry_n 421._o their_o zeal_n and_o endeavour_n be_v praise_v 422._o of_o their_o school-divinity_n 425._o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n of_o this_o time_n 430._o who_o they_o exclude_v from_o the_o ministry_n 430_o 431._o that_o they_o preach_v to_o none_o until_o they_o be_v first_o sure_a of_o so_o much_o a_o year_n 433._o the_o more_o moderate_a of_o they_o exclaim_v against_o the_o excessive_a revenue_n of_o the_o clergy_n 435._o though_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o part_v with_o old_a benefice_n 436._o they_o will_v not_o labour_v 437._o whether_o they_o have_v make_v a_o perfect_a reformation_n in_o worship_n 440_o 441._o their_o worship_n can_v easy_o be_v stop_v 455._o they_o have_v give_v great_a scandal_n to_o the_o reformation_n 470_o they_o deny_v water_n baptism_n to_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 480._o of_o water-baptism_n 491_o 392._o of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 407_o 409._o they_o use_v not_o wash_v of_o foot_n 489._o how_o they_o do_v vindicate_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n 524._o some_o affirm_v that_o wicked_a king_n and_o magistrate_n ought_v to_o be_v depose_v yea_o kill_v 5.24_o how_o they_o meet_v when_o they_o have_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o magistrate_n 529_o 530._o of_o oath_n and_o swear_v 550_o 551._o according_a to_o the_o episcopalian_a and_o presbyterian_a principle_n and_o practice_n no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o state_n but_o first_o they_o must_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n 691._o the_o protestant_n to_o their_o shame_n have_v recourse_n to_o their_o old_a abdicated_a father_n the_o pope_n for_o a_o title_n to_o their_o
in_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n to_o be_v refuse_v and_o disow_v 218._o be_v operation_n etc._n etc._n 601_o 607._o spiritual_a iniquity_n 428_o 429._o spiritual_a discern_v 519_o stephen_n speak_v by_o the_o spirit_n 282_o study_n the_o priest_n study_v and_o premeditation_n to_o preach_v by_o the_o hourglass_n 431_o 454_o 848_o 850._o suffer_v how_o paul_n fill_v up_o that_o which_o be_v behind_o of_o the_o affliction_n of_o christ_n how_o any_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n and_o conform_v to_o his_o death_n 394_o superstition_n 440_o 441._o whence_o superstition_n spring_v 450_o 475_o 492_o supper_n see_v communion_n bread_n it_o be_v of_o old_a administer_v even_o to_o little_a child_n and_o infant_n 512._o argument_n concern_v the_o supper_n answer_v etc._n etc._n 615_o 618_o 160_o 865_o t._n table_n 508._o talon_n one_o talon_n be_v not_o at_o all_o insufficient_a of_o itself_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o talent_n 344_o 345_o 349._o those_o that_o improve_v their_o talent_n well_o be_v call_v good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n 382._o he_o that_o improve_v well_o his_o two_o talent_n be_v nothing_o less_o accept_v than_o he_o that_o improve_v his_o five_o 388._o talk_v see_v play_n taulerus_n be_v instruct_v by_o the_o poor_a laic_a 417_o he_o taste_v of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 444._o testimony_n see_v spirit_n the_o four_o student_n testimony_n against_o their_o fellow_n student_n 674._o thou_o and_o thou_o see_v number_n theseus_n his_o boat_n 431._o thomas_n a_o kempis_n 444._o tithe_n be_v assign_v to_o the_o levite_n but_o not_o to_o the_o minister_n of_o this_o day_n 432_o 433_o title_n it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o lawful_a for_o the_o christian_n to_o use_v those_o title_n of_o honour_n majesty_n etc._n etc._n 533_o 535_o 540_o 564_o 565._o tongue_n the_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n be_v laudable_a 421_o 422._o tradition_n how_o unsufficient_a it_o be_v to_o decide_v 277._o it_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o faith_n 513_o translation_n see_v bible_n interpreter_n truth_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n what_o one_o say_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o which_o the_o truth_n itself_o interpret_n itself_o say_v 271._o truth_n be_v not_o hard_a to_o be_v arrive_v at_o but_o be_v most_o nigh_o ibid._n turk_n among_o they_o there_o may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n 404_o 405._o v._o vesper_n 443_o understanding_n none_o understand_v why_o they_o turn_v not_o to_o the_o light_n that_o give_v a_o understanding_n 8._o see_v intellect_n voice_n outward_a voice_n see_v faith_n miracle_n w._n wait_v in_o silence_n 13_o war_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o resist_v evil_a nor_o wage_v war_n 533._o the_o national_a preacher_n and_o professor_n the_o chief_a promoter_n of_o war_n 709_o who_o account_v it_o lawful_a to_o revenge_v every_o injury_n be_v no_o favourer_n of_o universal_a love_n nor_o true_a follower_n of_o patient_n jesus_n 704_o 705._o the_o devil_n the_o primary_n cause_v of_o all_o the_o confusion_n and_o war_n in_o christendom_n so_o call_v 707._o unless_o this_o be_v foresee_v and_o this_o evil_a guest_n turn_v out_o no_o effectual_a remedy_n can_v be_v apply_v ibid._n worldly_n and_o carnal_a wisdom_n the_o cause_n of_o war_n 711._o wash_v of_o foot_n 426_o 427._o water_v some_o water_n so_o clean_a and_o pure_a that_o pass_v through_o a_o unclean_a pipe_n can_v be_v defile_v by_o it_o 25._o westminster_n confession_n of_o faith_n say_v express_o ch_z 3._o that_o god_n ordain_v such_o as_o be_v not_o elect_v for_o dishonour_n and_o wrath_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glorious_a justice_n 775._o the_o same_o confession_n say_v that_o nothing_o future_a or_o what_o be_v to_o come_v even_o as_o foresee_v by_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n decree_n ibid._n the_o westminster_n confession_n of_o faith_n have_v long_o lie_v under_o the_o censure_n of_o a_o examen_fw-la not_o yet_o answer_v 726._o the_o confession_n weak_o confirm_v and_o the_o scripture_n pervert_v to_o make_v they_o serve_v for_o a_o proof_n 726_o 727._o the_o scripture_n be_v make_v to_o serve_v this_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o it_o to_o answer_v the_o scripture_n 727_o william_n barclay_n 524._o woman_n a_o woman_n can_v preach_v 427_o 432._o luther_n affirm_v that_o a_o woman_n may_v be_v a_o preacher_n 410._o argument_n against_o woman_n preach_v answer_v 621_o 622_o word_n the_o eternal_a word_n be_v the_o son_n it_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n and_o be_v god_n it_o be_v jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o god_n create_v all_o thing_n 274_o 334_o 747._o what_o augustin_n read_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o platonist_n concern_v this_o word_n 377._o that_o more_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n be_v not_o the_o scripture_n 17._o the_o life_n and_o virtue_n of_o word_n be_v a_o distinct_a thing_n from_o the_o word_n 644._o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v ascribe_v to_o christ_n 747._o work_v be_v either_o of_o the_o law_n or_o of_o the_o gospel_n 382._o see_v justification_n good_a work_v the_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o justification_n 817._o the_o merit_n and_o worth_n of_o good_a work_n be_v from_o christ_n 20._o in_o what_o sense_n good_a work_n be_v reckon_v meritorious_a 79._o worship_n what_o the_o true_a and_o acceptable_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v and_o how_o it_o be_v offer_v and_o what_o the_o superstitious_a and_o abominable_a be_v 440._o the_o true_a worship_n be_v soon_o corrupt_v and_o lose_v 440_o 441._o concern_v the_o worship_n do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostasy_n 443_o 467._o of_o what_o worship_n be_v here_o handle_v and_o of_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o woship_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a covenant_n 441_o 242_o 455_o 457._o the_o true_a worship_n be_v neither_o limit_v to_o time_n place_n or_o person_n and_o it_o be_v explain_v how_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v 440_o 442_o 450_o 451_o 466_o 467_o 483_o 484._o concern_v the_o lord_n day_n and_o the_o day_n upon_o which_o worship_n be_v perform_v 442_o 443._o of_o the_o public_a and_o silent_a worship_n and_o its_o excellency_n 444_o 452._o of_o preach_v 452_o 465._o of_o prayer_n 465_o 472._o what_o sort_n of_o worship_n the_o quaker_n be_v for_o and_o what_o sort_n their_o adversary_n 474._o the_o definition_n of_o civil_a and_o religious_a worship_n defend_v by_o a_o wrong_a translation_n 59_o 60._o concern_v worship_n 745_o 746_o 169_o 634_o 603._o x._o xaverius_n his_o testimony_n concern_v the_o inward_a innate_a light_n in_o the_o soul_n 701_o 702._o z._n zeal_n have_v a_o right_a bottom_n and_o foundation_n proceed_v pure_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v a_o great_a virtue_n and_o great_o to_o be_v commend_v and_o press_v after_o 680._o false_a zeal_n and_o the_o several_a kind_n thereof_o 681_o 682._o errata_fw-la pag._n li._n error_n correct_v 3_o 45_o say_v to_o say_v so_o 38_o 21_o we_o keep_v you_o keep_v 89_o 34_o give_v give_v some_o apostle_n 92_o 15_o and_o 42_o deal_n 92_o 33_o and_o 65_o deal_n 150_o 5_o unto_o unto_o i_o 347_o 21_o else_o deal_n 508_o 28_o act._n 6.26_o act._n 6.2_o 6._o 6●8_n 44_o arminian_n armenian_n 704_o 49_o such_o deal_n 766_o 37_o shall_v i_o i_o shall_v 833_o 47_o of_o after_o in_o the_o margin_n pag._n li._n error_n correct_v 122_o 2_o gal._n 41.9_o gal._n 4.19_o 137_o 36_o 2_o tim._n 17_o 2_o tim._n 2._o 367_o 16_o english_a deal_n in_o the_o table_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o letter_n b._n after_o the_o word_n super-substantial_a bread_n put_v 499._o finis_fw-la